Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n apostle_n scripture_n tradition_n 5,271 5 9.2621 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54576 A compendious history of the Catholick church from the year 600 untill the year 1600 shewing her deformation and reformation : together with the rise, reign, rage, and begin-fall of the Roman AntiChrist : with many other profitable instructions gathered out of divers writers of the several times, and other histories / by Alexander Petrie ... Petrie, Alexander, 1594?-1662.; Church of Scotland. General Assembly. 1657 (1657) Wing P1879; ESTC R4555 1,586,559 1,238

There are 49 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

richard_n a_o deacon_n with_o other_o upon_o several_a occasion_n of_o sedition_n among_o the_o people_n when_o chetumar_n be_v dead_a so_o great_a be_v the_o sedition_n there_o that_o no_o presbyter_n do_v abide_v until_o walinch_v be_v duke_n send_v again_o unto_o virgilius_n who_o send_v hiemo_n and_o reginbald_n presbyter_n and_o majoran_n a_o deacon_n with_o other_o and_o in_o the_o year_n 794._o charles_n send_v erick_n to_o be_v their_o duke_n who_o expel_v a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o huns_n and_o then_o that_o land_n of_o pannonia_n inferior_a continue_v under_o obedience_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v embrace_v by_o the_o people_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 9_o in_o all_o these_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o send_v to_o or_o from_o rome_n for_o their_o reformation_n 13._o in_o this_o century_n the_o turk_n come_v out_o of_o scythia_n or_o tartary_n into_o the_o province_n mahametans_n turk_n become_v mahametans_n of_o alami_fw-la thence_o into_o colchis_n out_o of_o that_o into_o armenia_n and_o then_o into_o asia_n the_o less_o an._n 755._o history_n do_v vary_v concern_v their_o original_n but_o the_o most_o probable_a opinion_n be_v that_o they_o be_v descend_v of_o the_o tartar_n because_o pompon_n mela_n who_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o emperor_n claudius_n reckon_v turcae_n among_o the_o scythian_n lib._n 1._o cap._n chalybes_n and_o as_o io._n lampadius_n after_o mechovius_n witness_v the_o turk_n and_o tartar_n have_v the_o same_o manner_n of_o apparel_n one_o manner_n of_o ride_v one_o manner_n of_o bow_n and_o arrow_n and_o in_o language_n they_o differ_v only_o in_o dialect_n as_o the_o italian_a and_o spaniard_n at_o that_o time_n the_o turk_n hinder_v the_o saracen_n from_o conquer_a in_o asia_n and_o europe_n god_n raise_v up_o one_o wicked_a enemy_n against_o another_o that_o his_o church_n may_v have_v breathe_v except_o that_o they_o prevail_v in_o the_o mediterrane_n isle_n and_o peloponnesus_n in_o the_o end_n these_o two_o do_v agree_v upon_o condition_n 1._o that_o the_o turk_n shall_v be_v call_v sarazen_n and_o imbrance_n mahumetism_n 2._o they_o shall_v have_v the_o province_n of_o hircana_n or_o sogdiana_n 3._o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o the_o calipha_n of_o babylon_n they_o continue_v live_v by_o pastorage_n without_o a_o prince_n of_o their_o own_o until_o civil_a war_n among_o the_o saracen_n about_o the_o year_n 1050_o and_o therefore_o i_o speak_v no_o more_o of_o they_o until_o the_o 11._o century_n chap._n iu._n of_o britan_n 1._o beda_n a_o presbyter_n in_o the_o monastery_n at_o weeremouth_n near_o durham_n for_o doctrine_n beda_n venerable_n and_o hi●_n doctrine_n his_o godliness_n and_o modesty_n be_v call_v venerable_a and_o be_v still_o account_v worthy_a of_o that_o title_n he_o be_v credulous_a in_o believe_v of_o false_a miracle_n and_o slip_v into_o some_o corruption_n of_o the_o time_n as_o confession_n and_o chrism_n yet_o even_o in_o these_o he_o differ_v from_o the_o latter_a time_n for_o on_o jam._n 5._o at_o these_o word_n let_v they_o pray_v anoint_v he_o say_v we_o read_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v so_o and_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n hold_v that_o the_o weak_a shall_v be_v anoint_v with_o oil_n by_o the_o presbyter_n and_o prayer_n be_v conjoin_v be_v heal_v nor_o only_o by_o the_o presbyter_n but_o as_o pope_n innocentius_n write_v even_o any_o christian_n may_v anoint_v in_o his_o own_o necessity_n or_o of_o other_o here_o he_o speak_v of_o anoint_v as_o a_o mean_n of_o heal_a and_o not_o a_o sacrament_n for_o the_o die_a and_o on_o the_o word_n confess_v your_o sin_n one_o to_o another_o and_o pray_v one_o for_o another_o that_o you_o may_v be_v heal_v he_o say_v in_o this_o sentence_n shall_v be_v that_o discretion_n that_o we_o shall_v confess_v to_o one_o another_o daily_o and_o light_a sin_n and_o believe_v to_o be_v heal_v by_o their_o daily_a prayer_n and_o moreover_o the_o uncleanness_n of_o more_o grievous_a leprosy_n let_v we_o according_a to_o the_o law_n confess_v unto_o the_o priest_n and_o have_v a_o care_n to_o be_v cleanse_v at_o his_o will_n how_o and_o how_o long_a time_n he_o shall_v command_v he_o see_v in_o these_o word_n no_o warrant_n that_o any_o shall_v confess_v unto_o a_o priest_n but_o one_o to_o another_o mutual_o and_o as_o he_o say_v coaequaliter_fw-la and_o that_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v heal_v and_o what_o he_o will_v have_v do_v unto_o the_o priest_n he_o borrow_v it_o from_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o on_o mar._n chap._n 3._o when_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o miracle_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o apostle_n he_o say_v now_o when_o the_o number_n of_o believer_n be_v multiply_v many_o within_o the_o holy_a church_n have_v the_o life_n or_o conversation_n of_o virtue_n but_o have_v not_o the_o sign_n or_o miracle_n of_o virtue_n because_o miracle_n be_v in_o vain_a show_v outward_o if_o it_o fail_v that_o shall_v work_v inward_o for_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n tongue_n be_v a_o sign_n not_o to_o believer_n but_o to_o unbeliever_n here_o he_o show_v that_o miracle_n be_v not_o necessary_a when_o the_o gospel_n be_v confirm_v and_o receive_v as_o for_o the_o article_n of_o positive_a doctrine_n he_o be_v clear_a of_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n on_o 1_o pet._n 4._o at_o these_o word_n if_o any_o speak_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o say_v fear_v lest_o any_o man_n speak_v or_o command_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n or_o but_o what_o be_v evident_o command_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o be_v find_v as_o a_o false_a witness_n of_o god_n or_o sacrilegious_a or_o introduce_v any_o thing_n different_a from_o the_o lord_n doctrine_n or_o leave_v or_o passing-by_a any_o of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v pleasant_a unto_o god_n see_v he_o most_o manifest_o command_v preacher_n concern_v those_o who_o they_o shall_v teach_v say_v teach_v they_o to_o observe_v whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o for_o he_o command_v to_o deliver_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o their_o hearer_n which_o he_o have_v command_v and_o no_o other_o thing_n and_o those_o thing_n not_o in_o part_n only_o but_o all_o and_o on_o the_o 2_o pet._n 1._o near_o the_o end_n who_o give_v heed_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n do_v well_o that_o thereby_o they_o may_v have_v the_o light_n of_o knowledge_n these_o shall_v first_o know_v that_o none_o of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n do_v preach_v unto_o the_o people_n through_o their_o interpretation_n but_o what_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o lord_n that_o do_v they_o commend_v to_o be_v do_v by_o their_o hearer_n and_o what_o heavenly_a mystery_n they_o have_v perceive_v in_o secret_a these_o simple_o either_o by_o word_n or_o writ_n do_v they_o deliver_v unto_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o not_o as_o the_o diviner_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o what_o they_o have_v forge_v out_o of_o their_o own_o heart_n these_o thing_n do_v they_o deliver_v unto_o the_o deceive_a people_n as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n therefore_o as_o the_o prophet_n do_v write_v not_o their_o own_o but_o god_n word_n so_o the_o reader_n of_o these_o shall_v not_o follow_v his_o own_o interpretation_n lest_o he_o stray_v from_o the_o true_a sense_n but_o by_o all_o mean_v he_o shall_v attend_v this_o how_o he_o who_o writ_n will_v have_v his_o word_n understand_v so_o far_o he_o and_o how_o the_o right_a sense_n may_v be_v have_v he_o teach_v in_o philip._n 1._o from_o augustine_n say_v when_o word_n make_v the_o scripture_n ambiguous_a first_o we_o must_v see_v that_o we_o distinguish_v or_o pronounce_v they_o not_o wrong_v and_o when_o after_o such_o diligence_n we_o find_v it_o uncertain_a how_o to_o distinguish_v or_o to_o pronounce_v they_o look_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v from_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o both_o or_o all_o or_o more_o part_n be_v dubious_a than_o we_o shall_v consult_v the_o text_n itself_o by_o the_o follow_a and_o precede_v part_n where_o the_o ambiguity_n be_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v see_v unto_o which_o of_o these_o many_o sense_n it_o will_v give_v suffrage_n and_o suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v conjoin_v concern_v the_o person_n and_o nature_n of_o christ_n on_o 2_o pet._n 2._o he_o say_v arrius_n who_o say_v that_o our_o redeemer_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o divinity_n inferior_a unto_o the_o father_n and_o photinus_n who_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v man_n and_o not_o god_n and_o manichaeus_n who_o say_v christ_n be_v god_n only_o and_o not_o a_o very_a man_n and_o hebron_n who_o say_v christ_n be_v not_o before_o mary_n and_o take_v his_o original_n
dei_fw-la he_o say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n sound_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o soul_n do_v trouble_v terrify_v and_o judge_v but_o anon_o if_o you_o observe_v it_o quicken_v melt_v warm_v enlighten_v and_o cleanse_v brief_o it_o be_v our_o food_n and_o sword_n and_o medicine_n confirmation_n and_o rest_n it_o be_v also_o our_o resurrection_n and_o consummation_n and_o think_v it_o not_o a_o wonder_n that_o god_n word_n be_v call_v now_o all_o in_o all_o in_o respect_n of_o justification_n see_v it_o shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o unto_o glorification_n then_o let_v a_o sinner_n hear_v it_o note_v and_o be_v afraid_a a_o carnal_a soul_n shall_v tremble_v at_o that_o voice_n for_o that_o word_n be_v lively_a and_o efficacious_a it_o search_v all_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o heart_n so_o that_o though_o thou_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n if_o thou_o will_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n thou_o shall_v live_v for_o the_o word_n that_o he_o speak_v be_v spirit_n and_o life_n if_o thy_o heart_n be_v hard_a remember_v how_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o send_v forth_o his_o word_n and_o it_o melt_v they_o and_o my_o soul_n melt_v when_o my_o belove_a spoke_n if_o thou_o be_v lukewarm_a and_o fear_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o go_v not_o away_o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o it_o will_v warm_v thou_o for_o his_o word_n be_v hot_a as_o fire_n and_o if_o thou_o bewail_v the_o darkness_n of_o ignorance_n harken_v diligent_o what_o the_o lord_n will_v speak_v in_o thou_o and_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v a_o light_n unto_o thy_o foot_n and_o a_o lantern_n unto_o thy_o step_n and_o if_o thou_o be_v the_o more_o sad_a that_o the_o more_o thou_o be_v enlighten_v thou_o see_v the_o more_o clear_o even_o thy_o least_o offence_n the_o father_n will_v sanctify_v thou_o by_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v his_o word_n that_o thou_o may_v hear_v with_o the_o apostle_n now_o you_o be_v clean_a for_o or_o through_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o and_o when_o thou_o wash_v thy_o hand_n behold_v he_o have_v prepare_v a_o table_n before_o thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v not_o live_v by_o bread_n only_o but_o by_o every_o word_n that_o proceed_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o that_o food_n thou_o may_v run_v the_o way_n of_o his_o command_n if_o a_o army_n be_v set_v against_o thou_o and_o a_o skirmish_n of_o tentation_n take_v unto_o thou_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o thereby_o shall_v thou_o easy_o triumph_v or_o if_o it_o shall_v happen_v as_o in_o battle_n it_o be_v usual_a that_o thou_o be_v wound_v he_o will_v send_v forth_o his_o word_n and_o heal_v thou_o and_o he_o shall_v deliver_v thou_o from_o death_n that_o in_o thou_o also_o it_o may_v be_v verify_v what_o the_o centurion_n say_v lord_n only_o say_v the_o word_n and_o my_o servant_n shall_v be_v heal_v but_o if_o yet_o thou_o stumble_v confess_v and_o cry_v my_o foot_n be_v almost_o go_v and_o my_o step_n be_v well_o nigh_o slip_v and_o by_o his_o word_n he_o will_v strengthen_v thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v learn_v experimental_o that_o even_o the_o heaven_n be_v make_v strong_a by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o all_o their_o power_n be_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n in_o epist_n 91._o ad_fw-la abbates_n suessioni_fw-la congreg_n i_o will_v be_v in_o that_o council_n where_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v not_o obstinate_o defend_v nor_o superstitious_o observe_v but_o where_o they_o search_v diligent_o and_o humble_o what_o be_v the_o good_a acceptable_a and_o perfect_a will_n of_o god_n thither_o be_o i_o carry_v with_o all_o my_o desire_n and_o there_o will_v i_o abide_v devout_o god_n only_o will_v not_o to_o be_v better_a than_o he_o be_v because_o he_o can_v let_v they_o be_v go_v both_o from_o i_o and_o from_o you_o which_o say_v we_o will_v not_o be_v better_o than_o our_o father_n protest_v that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o lukewarm_a and_o dissolute_a the_o remembrance_n of_o these_o be_v with_o a_o curse_n for_o they_o have_v eat_v sour_a grape_n wherewith_o the_o child_n tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n or_o if_o they_o do_v glory_n in_o holy_a parent_n of_o good_a memory_n let_v they_o follow_v their_o holiness_n while_o they_o stand_v for_o their_o dispensation_n and_o connivence_n as_o for_o a_o law_n and_o in_o tract_n de_fw-fr precept_n &_o dispen_v many_o thing_n be_v devise_v and_o ordain_v not_o because_o they_o may_v not_o be_v otherwise_o but_o because_o it_o be_v so_o expedient_a and_o certain_o but_o for_o conserve_n charity_n therefore_o so_o long_o as_o the_o thing_n do_v serve_v charity_n let_v they_o stand_v without_o change_n nor_o can_v they_o be_v change_v without_o offence_n no_o nor_o by_o the_o ruler_n but_o contrary_o if_o they_o be_v contrary_a unto_o charity_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o only_a unto_o who_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o see_v so_o and_o unto_o who_o it_o be_v commit_v to_o foresee_v be_v it_o not_o clear_o most_o righteous_a that_o what_o thing_n be_v devise_v for_o charity_n shall_v also_o be_v omit_v or_o intermit_v for_o charity_n when_o it_o be_v so_o expedient_a or_o at_o least_o that_o they_o be_v change_v to_o another_o thing_n more_o expedient_a as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n certain_o it_o be_v unjust_a if_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v ordain_v for_o charity_n be_v hold_v against_o charity_n let_v they_o therefore_o hold_v fast_o what_o be_v immovable_a nor_o do_v i_o only_o think_v so_o or_o first_o speak_v so_o the_o pope_n have_v so_o speak_v leo_n say_v where_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a change_v not_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v necessity_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n let_v he_o who_o have_v power_n dispense_v with_o they_o for_o a_o law_n be_v change_v upon_o necessity_n now_o by_o necessary_a or_o unviolable_a i_o understand_v not_o what_o be_v deliver_v by_o man_n but_o what_o be_v proclaim_v by_o god_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v change_v but_o by_o he_o which_o give_v it_o for_o example_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v and_o all_o the_o other_o commandment_n of_o that_o table_n albeit_o these_o can_v no_o way_n be_v dispense_v with_o by_o man_n nor_o be_v it_o ever_o lawful_a nor_o shall_v it_o ever_o be_v lawful_a unto_o any_o man_n to_o loose_v one_o of_o these_o any_o way_n yet_o the_o lord_n have_v loose_v they_o when_o he_o please_v as_o when_o he_o command_v the_o hebrew_n to_o spoil_v the_o egyptian_n and_o therefore_o when_o we_o read_v that_o any_o good_a man_n have_v do_v any_o time_n otherwise_o and_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o witness_v that_o god_n have_v command_v he_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o they_o have_v sin_v as_o man_n or_o that_o they_o have_v receive_v a_o particular_a warrant_n from_o god_n as_o some_o prophet_n do_v but_o what_o will_v i_o have_v to_o be_v think_v necessary_a and_o unchangeable_a true_o that_o only_o which_o be_v confirm_v by_o divine_a and_o eternal_a reason_n so_o that_o be_v change_v no_o way_n not_o by_o god_n himself_o under_o this_o kind_n be_v all_o which_o our_o lord_n do_v teach_v in_o that_o sermon_n on_o the_o mount_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n concern_v love_n humility_n meekness_n and_o other_o virtue_n to_o be_v observe_v spiritual_o for_o these_o be_v such_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a nor_o expedient_a to_o do_v otherwise_o at_o any_o time_n at_o all_o time_n unto_o every_o person_n these_o thing_n bring_v death_n if_o they_o be_v despise_v and_o life_n if_o they_o be_v observe_v etc._n etc._n behold_v how_o these_o abbot_n have_v a_o purpose_n of_o reformation_n but_o be_v hinder_v by_o other_o upon_o that_o ground_n of_o former_a practice_n or_o ordinance_n and_o how_o bernard_n excuse_v former_a practice_n and_o yet_o will_v have_v have_v a_o change_n and_o still_o make_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n in_o the_o same_o treatise_n he_o say_v true_a obedience_n know_v no_o law_n nor_o be_v restrain_v to_o any_o bound_n by_o vigour_n of_o free_a and_o a_o glad_a mind_n it_o consider_v not_o measure_n but_o be_v enlarge_v into_o infinite_a liberty_n this_o be_v the_o property_n of_o the_o just_a man_n for_o who_o the_o law_n be_v not_o make_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v live_v without_o a_o law_n but_o because_o he_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n and_o be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o vow_n of_o any_o profession_n which_o he_o overcome_v by_o the_o devotion_n of_o his_o mind_n in_o tract_n de_fw-fr gra._n &_o lib._n arbit_n this_o work_n of_o sanctification_n can_v be_v do_v without_o two_o one_o by_o
to_o tell_v you_o plain_a too_o much_o commove_v without_o cause_n your_o fatherhood_n may_v consider_v that_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a 1._o the_o holy_a land_n lie_v in_o misery_n and_o peril_n 2._o all_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v depart_v from_o we_o 3._o frederick_n the_o mighty_a prince_n of_o christendom_n be_v against_o we_o 4._o both_o your_o holiness_n and_o we_o be_v exile_v from_o your_o papal_a seat_n and_o thrust_v out_o of_o italy_n 5._o hungary_n and_o all_o the_o nation_n thereabouts_o look_v for_o nothing_o but_o utter_a ruin_n from_o the_o tartar_n 6._o germany_n be_v toss_v with_o intestine_a war_n 7._o spain_n be_v fierce_a and_o cruel_a against_o we_o even_o to_o the_o cut_v out_o of_o bishop_n tongue_n 8._o france_n be_v by_o we_o impoverish_v and_o like_a to_o conspire_v against_o we_o 9_o now_o wretched_a england_n so_o oft_o plague_v by_o we_o much_o like_o balaam_n ass_n gore_v with_o spur_n begin_v to_o complain_v of_o her_o intolerable_a grief_n and_o we_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o ishmael_n hate_v all_o man_n do_v provoke_v all_o man_n to_o hate_v we_o ......_o matth._n parisien_n ad_fw-la an._n 1246._o but_o innocentius_n will_v relent_v nothing_o yea_o make_v his_o exaction_n more_o grievous_a and_o begin_v to_o excite_v lewis_n king_n of_o france_n to_o slay_v or_o expel_v king_n henry_n france_n remember_v former_a time_n and_o lewis_n refuse_v to_o vex_v his_o cousin_n but_o say_v the_o before_o name_v writer_n the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n be_v provoke_v to_o mislike_v the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n whereof_o the_o one_o seek_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o father_n and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n but_o he_o prove_v a_o step_n father_n and_o she_o a_o stepdame_n 4._o in_o the_o year_n 1222._o the_o in-dweller_n of_o caithnes_n refuse_v to_o pay_v ten_o unto_o adam_n their_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o he_o excommunicate_v they_o all_o then_o they_o come_v into_o his_o house_n and_o in_o his_o chamber_n they_o slay_v a_o monk_n and_o his_o servant_n and_o they_o draw_v he_o into_o his_o kitchen_n and_o burn_v he_o with_o all_o the_o house_n pope_n honorius_n rest_v not_o till_o he_o have_v cause_v king_n alexander_n to_o hang_v four_o hundred_o of_o they_o and_o the_o earl_n of_o caithnes_n hardly_o obtain_v pardon_n albeit_o he_o be_v not_o accessary_a unto_o the_o deed_n boet._n lib._n 13._o cap._n 14._o about_o that_o william_n bishop_n of_o st._n andrews_n bring_v from_o france_n some_o dominican_n franciscan_n jacboine_n and_o some_o monk_n call_v vallis_fw-la umbrosae_fw-la these_o by_o their_o crafty_a insinuation_n with_o people_n do_v supplant_v the_o credit_n of_o priest_n and_o draw_v unto_o themselves_o both_o credit_n and_o mean_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o pope_n because_o they_o study_v especial_o to_o advance_v their_o design_n spotsw_n hist_o p._n 43._o 5._o nigellus_n vireker_n a_o learned_a and_o much_o respect_a monk_n at_o canterbury_n write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr abusu_fw-la verum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o send_v it_o unto_o william_n bishop_n of_o ely_z chancellor_n of_o england_n a_o man_n say_v bale_n most_o envious_a in_o this_o book_n he_o rebuke_v not_o the_o proud_a prelate_n only_o but_o all_o teacher_n under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n because_o they_o commit_v the_o cure_n of_o soul_n unto_o child_n belly-god_n and_o despiser_n of_o the_o sacred_a word_n 6._o walter_n mapez_n archdeacon_n of_o oxford_n be_v once_o send_v by_o king_n john_n unto_o rome_n after_o his_o return_n he_o do_v write_v several_a book_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n close_o reprove_v the_o pope_n sometime_o under_o the_o name_n of_o goliath_n sometime_o of_o pluto_n and_o show_v manifest_o that_o then_o antichrist_n be_v reign_v in_o the_o world_n he_o have_v a_o fellow_n with_o he_o who_o make_v show_v of_o a_o pleasant_a or_o rhymer_n but_o all_o his_o rhyme_n be_v say_v to_o be_v write_v by_o mapez_n himself_o in_o they_o he_o plain_o paint_v forth_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o call_v the_o prelate_n proud_a beast_n the_o rhyme_n begin_v thus_o roma_fw-la caput_fw-la mundi_fw-la sed_fw-la nil_fw-la capit_fw-la mundum_fw-la quod_fw-la pendet_fw-la à_fw-la capite_fw-la totum_fw-la est_fw-la immundum_fw-la trahit_fw-la enim_fw-la vitium_fw-la primum_fw-la &_o secundum_fw-la et_fw-la de_fw-la sundo_fw-la redolet_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la juxta_fw-la fundum_fw-la roma_fw-it capit_fw-la singulos_fw-la &_o res_fw-la singulorum_fw-la romanorum_fw-la curia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la forum_n ibi_fw-la sunt_fw-la venalia_fw-la jura_fw-la senatorum_fw-la et_fw-la solvit_fw-la contraria_fw-la copia_fw-la nummorum_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la consistorio_fw-la siquis_fw-la causam_fw-la regat_fw-la svam_fw-la vel_fw-la alterius_fw-la hic_fw-la imprimis_fw-la legate_n nisi_fw-la des_fw-fr pecuniam_fw-la roma_fw-la totum_fw-la negate_fw-la qui_fw-la plus_fw-la that_fw-mi pecuniae_fw-la meliùs_fw-la allegat_fw-la etc._n etc._n io._n bale_n in_o catalogue_n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 14._o we_o find_v these_o rhyme_n ascribe_v unto_o this_o mapez_n vide_fw-la deus_fw-la ultionum_fw-la vide_fw-la videns_fw-la omne_fw-la quod_fw-la spelunca_fw-la vespillonum_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o templum_fw-la solomonis_fw-la venit_fw-la princeps_fw-la babylonis_fw-la et_fw-la excelsum_fw-la sibi_fw-la thronum_fw-la posuit_fw-la in_o medio_fw-la these_o word_n be_v to_o no_o sense_n unless_o the_o temple_n signify_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o babylon_n signify_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n 7._o an._n 1237._o be_v a_o conference_n at_o york_n between_o henry_n the_o iii_o king_n of_o england_n and_o alexander_n the_o ii_o king_n of_o scot_n where_o they_o do_v accord_n upon_o the_o matter_n of_o debate_n between_o the_o kingdom_n then_o otto_n the_o pope_n legate_n will_v go_v into_o scotland_n for_o redress_v as_o he_o say_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n but_o alexander_n say_v unto_o he_o i_o remember_v not_o that_o evera_fw-la legate_n be_v in_o my_o land_n neither_o have_v i_o need_v of_o one_o thanks_o be_v unto_o god_n neither_o be_v any_o in_o my_o father_n time_n nor_o in_o any_o of_o my_o ancestor_n neither_o will_v i_o suffer_v any_o so_o long_o as_o i_o may_v otto_n return_v with_o king_n henry_n matth._n parisien_n nevertheless_o this_o alexander_n do_v suffer_v peter_n red_a to_o take_v away_o 3000._o pound_n for_o the_o pope_n which_o no_o king_n of_o scotland_n have_v suffer_v before_o idem_fw-la ad_fw-la an._n 1240._o but_o boet._n lib._n 13._o cap._n 20._o add_v he_o send_v the_o earl_n of_o carrict_a and_o athale_n to_o accompany_v lewis_n king_n of_o france_n into_o syria_n and_o he_o send_v unto_o the_o pope_n a_o thousand_o mark_n lest_o he_o shall_v think_v himself_o despise_v 8._o robert_n grosshead_n alias_o capito_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n be_v the_o most_o renown_a bishop_n of_o his_o time_n a_o godly_a man_n a_o admonisher_n of_o his_o king_n a_o fearful_a rebuker_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o bold_a reprover_n of_o prelate_n a_o corrector_n of_o monk_n a_o direct_a and_o teacher_n of_o priest_n a_o favourer_n of_o student_n a_o preacher_n to_o the_o people_n a_o defender_n of_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n a_o persecutor_n of_o the_o incontinent_a a_o searcher_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o lover_n of_o truth_n a_o hammerer_n and_o contemner_n of_o the_o roman_n say_v matth._n paris_n in_o the_o year_n 1237._o his_o own_o clark_n give_v he_o poison_v in_o a_o drink_n but_o as_o it_o please_v god_n he_o escape_v death_n at_o that_o time_n by_o help_n of_o medicine_n the_o priest_n which_o teach_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o human_a tradition_n he_o call_v the_o minister_n of_o satan_n thief_n of_o the_o night_n robber_n in_o the_o day_n corrupter_n of_o manner_n murderer_n of_o soul_n and_o angel_n of_o darkness_n and_o he_o call_v their_o exemption_n snare_n of_o the_o devil_n an._n 1253._o pope_n innocentius_n send_v unto_o he_o a_o letter_n command_v he_o to_o provide_v a_o canon_n place_n for_o a_o italian_a in_o his_o diocy_n nihil_fw-la obstante_fw-la he_o return_v answer_v i_o be_o most_o willing_a to_o obey_v apostolical_a commandment_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o apostle_n command_v i_o will_v gain-stand_a since_o i_o be_o oblige_v unto_o both_o by_o the_o command_n of_o god_n ....._o the_o tenor_n of_o your_o aforesaid_a letter_n agree_v not_o with_o apostolical_a holiness_n but_o plain_o disagree_v 1._o because_o by_o that_o word_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la in_o that_o and_o so_o many_o other_o letter_n do_v abound_v a_o deluge_n of_o inconstancy_n shamelesness_n lie_v deceive_a difficulty_n of_o trust_v any_o and_o innumerable_a other_o vice_n follow_v thereupon_o shake_v and_o confound_v the_o purity_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o quietness_n of_o all_o sociable_a conversation_n ....._o 2._o except_o the_o sin_n of_o lucifer_n which_o be_v also_o the_o sin_n of_o antichrist_n there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a sin_n nor_o
of_o your_o affair_n he_o have_v give_v unto_o our_o holy_a mother_n his_o godly_a and_o acceptable_a confession_n and_o have_v receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n from_o she_o wherein_o all_o man_n shall_v agree_v who_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v which_o also_o we_o will_v declare_v unto_o your_o charity_n wherefore_o belove_a brethren_n and_o son_n if_o it_o be_v so_o as_o we_o believe_v and_o trust_v hasten_v the_o unity_n together_o with_o we_o for_o where_o can_v you_o be_v more_o zealous_a against_o tempter_n then_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o under_o the_o shield_n of_o true_a salvation_n and_o where_o can_v you_o better_o refresh_v yourselves_o then_o where_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n be_v open_a all_o therefore_o who_o be_v thirsty_a come_v unto_o the_o water_n come_v buy_v the_o wine_n of_o sober_a joy_n without_o money_n and_o receive_v milk_n from_o the_o teat_n of_o her_o comfort_n we_o trust_v then_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n you_o agree_v with_o we_o wherefore_o from_o henceforth_o with_o singular_a care_n and_o love_n we_o will_v provide_v unto_o you_o spiritual_a pastor_n which_o shall_v have_v care_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o feed_v you_o with_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o example_n of_o life_n and_o shall_v not_o afflict_v you_o moreover_o concern_v the_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n we_o will_v gracious_o yield_v unto_o you_o with_o the_o apostle_n in_o these_o whatsoever_o have_v a_o good_a ground_n and_o a_o pure_a intention_n the_o grant_n of_o which_o may_v tend_v to_o your_o edification_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o honour_n of_o this_o our_o holy_a and_o true_a mother_n and_o her_o communion_n and_o obedience_n for_o very_o we_o intend_v to_o dispense_v and_o deal_v with_o good_a will_n and_o discretion_n in_o the_o difference_n of_o custom_n and_o rite_n the_o almighty_a god_n grant_v that_o we_o may_v hear_v as_o we_o have_v hear_v that_o many_o other_o have_v likewise_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o true_a life_n to_o the_o increase_n and_o multiply_v of_o the_o belove_a child_n of_o the_o true_a mother_n and_o cause_v you_o together_o with_o we_o to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o same_o profession_n and_o rite_n yea_o that_o we_o may_v praise_v he_o with_o heart_n and_o mouth_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n give_v at_o constantinople_n january_n 18._o an._n 1451._o rer._n bohem._n autiqui_fw-la scriptor_n pag._n 235._o edit_fw-la hannoviae_fw-la an._n 1602._o 26._o george_n pogiobratz_n king_n of_o bohemia_n be_v a_o good_a warrior_n and_o do_v not_o fear_v the_o threat_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n and_o he_o restore_v the_o ruin_a estate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n vratislavia_n and_o silesia_n refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o because_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n as_o cochlaeus_fw-la speak_v hist_n huss_n lib._n 12._o but_o pius_n the_o ii_o then_o intend_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n do_v by_o all_o mean_n persuade_v they_o to_o yield_v obedience_n and_o the_o king_n do_v require_v the_o pope_n to_o keep_v the_o compact_n of_o basil_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o bohemian_o the_o pope_n refuse_v to_o grant_v so_o much_o wherefore_o the_o king_n call_v the_o estate_n together_o and_o protest_v before_o that_o he_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o faith_n which_o they_o do_v profess_v and_o so_o do_v the_o noble_n an._n 1462._o cochl_n ibid._n pope_n paul_n give_v that_o kingdom_n unto_o mathias_n king_n of_o hungary_n and_o when_o he_o be_v busy_a against_o the_o turk_n and_o have_v recover_v several_a town_n and_o have_v enter_v into_o thracia_n with_o good_a success_n rodulph_n the_o pope_n legate_n draw_v he_o back_o from_o the_o turk_n to_o invade_v the_o christian_n in_o bohemia_n but_o god_n protect_v they_o against_o he_o although_o he_o have_v the_o aid_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o vratislavians_n and_o some_o city_n do_v accept_v he_o yea_o god_n defend_v that_o kingdom_n so_o that_o when_o george_n die_v an_z 1471._o and_o the_o pope_n have_v style_v mathias_n king_n of_o hungary_n and_o bohemia_n the_o estate_n of_o bohemia_n will_v not_o accept_v he_o even_o howbeit_o he_o have_v marry_v the_o daughter_n of_o george_n before_o the_o war_n but_o hate_v he_o for_o his_o unnatural_a usurpation_n and_o do_v choose_v ladislaus_n the_o son_n of_o casimire_n king_n of_o poland_n and_o the_o two_o son_n of_o pogiobratz_n prevail_v in_o war_n against_o mathias_n and_o the_o emperor_n make_v they_o both_o duke_n this_o be_v so_o offensive_a unto_o mathias_n that_o he_o proclaim_v war_n against_o the_o emperor_n but_o he_o be_v take_v away_o by_o death_n pet._n mexia_n 27._o stephen_n brulifer_n a_o doctor_n of_o sorbone_n and_o a_o franciscan_a teach_v in_o his_o lesson_n and_o maintain_v in_o dispute_n that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o council_n nor_o church_n can_v make_v any_o article_n or_o statute_n to_o bind_v the_o conscience_n of_o a_o christian_a that_o all_o their_o authority_n consist_v in_o the_o urge_n of_o obedience_n unto_o god_n word_n in_o preach_v it_o and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o have_v institute_v so_o that_o they_o bring_v nothing_o without_o his_o command_n he_o call_v justification_n by_o merit_n a_o devilish_a doctrine_n since_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n be_v sacrifice_v and_o have_v satisfy_v god_n justice_n for_o we_o the_o doctor_n of_o sorbone_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o among_o they_o but_o he_o go_v to_o diether_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n which_o have_v be_v depose_v for_o speak_v against_o the_o avarice_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v restore_v fascic_fw-la rer_n expet_n fol._n 164._o 28._o john_n de_fw-fr wesalia_n a_o preacher_n of_o worm_n be_v delate_a by_o the_o thomist_n unto_o the_o same_o diether_o he_o gather_v his_o book_n and_o send_v they_o unto_o the_o university_n of_o colein_n and_o heidleburg_n to_o be_v examine_v they_o convene_v this_o john_n before_o they_o at_o mentz_n in_o february_n an._n 1479._o after_o they_o have_v view_v his_o book_n they_o find_v these_o article_n which_o they_o call_v error_n 1._o all_o man_n be_v save_v free_o by_o the_o mere_a grace_n of_o christ_n through_o faith_n 2._o we_o shall_v believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o and_o not_o the_o gloss_n of_o any_o man_n 3._o god_n have_v from_o all_o eternity_n write_v in_o a_o book_n all_o his_o elect_n whosoever_o be_v not_o write_v there_o shall_v never_o be_v write_v in_o it_o and_o whosoever_o be_v write_v in_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v blot_v out_o 4._o our_o doctor_n do_v expound_v the_o scripture_n wicked_o and_o false_o 5._o christ_n never_o appoint_v a_o fast_v nor_o festival_n day_n neither_o forbid_v to_o eat_v any_o meat_n upon_o any_o day_n 6._o when_o peter_n do_v celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n he_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o consecration_n and_o then_o do_v communicate_v with_o other_o but_o now_o the_o priest_n must_v stand_v a_o hour_n and_o more_o when_o he_o say_v mass_n 7._o they_o be_v fool_n who_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n to_o rome_n for_o they_o may_v find_v as_o much_o good_a elsewhere_o 8._o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v expound_v by_o confer_v one_o text_n with_o another_o 9_o prelate_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o expound_v scripture_n by_o any_o peculiar_a right_n give_v unto_o one_o more_o than_o to_o another_o 10._o man_n tradition_n as_o fast_n feast_n pardon_n set_v prayer_n pilgrimage_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v 11._o extreme_a unction_n confirmation_n auricular_a confession_n and_o satisfaction_n be_v to_o be_v contemn_v they_o demand_v of_o he_o several_a question_n as_o whether_o christ_n be_v present_a bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n or_o spiritual_o he_o answer_v christ_n body_n be_v there_o present_a and_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v also_o 2._o what_o he_o think_v of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ans_fw-fr he_o believe_v not_o that_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o from_o one_o principium_fw-la because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o so_o 3._o what_o he_o think_v of_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n ans_fw-fr he_o believe_v not_o that_o christ_n have_v a_o vicar_n for_o he_o say_v behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 4._o what_o he_o think_v of_o pardon_n ans_fw-fr he_o have_v write_v a_o book_n wherein_o he_o have_v show_v that_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v distribute_v by_o pope_n because_o it_o be_v write_v revel_n 14._o their_o work_n follow_v they_o after_o these_o interrogatory_n and_o other_o of_o that_o sort_n three_o doctor_n be_v appoint_v to_o deal_v with_o he_o private_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o as_o you_o deal_v with_o i_o if_o christ_n be_v here_o you_o will_v condemn_v he_o as_o a_o heretic_n but_o he_o
bessarion_n be_v a_o wretched_a clerk_n in_o trapezus_n become_v a_o gloriou_n cardinal_n and_o almost_o pope_n luthet_n answer_v he_o see_v not_o what_o more_o affinity_n be_v between_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n than_o there_o be_v between_o light_n and_o darkness_n nothing_o in_o all_o his_o life_n have_v happen_v unto_o he_o more_o happy_o than_o the_o severity_n of_o leo_n by_o the_o gracious_a providence_n of_o god_n for_o at_o that_o time_n he_o have_v only_o see_v the_o abuse_n of_o indulgence_n and_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v easy_o command_v he_o if_o his_o adversary_n in_o that_o matter_n have_v be_v subject_a unto_o the_o law_n of_o equity_n but_o be_v provoke_v by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o holy_a palace_n by_o the_o reproach_n of_o cajetan_n and_o severity_n of_o pope_n leo_n he_o take_v the_o whole_a matter_n into_o more_o diligent_a consideration_n and_o have_v espy_v more_o intolerable_a error_n which_o he_o can_v not_o in_o conscience_n dissemble_v nor_o hide_v from_o others-and_a whereas_o he_o the_o legate_n profess_v himself_o not_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a and_o that_o appear_v by_o his_o reason_n that_o he_o accuse_v his_o doctrine_n of_o novelty_n yet_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n live_v not_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardd_n and_o bb_n do_v now_o nor_o can_v these_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o broil_n in_o germany_n strick_v against_o his_o doctrine_n but_o in_o the_o conceit_n of_o man_n which_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n see_v where_o ever_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v true_o such_o stir_n arise_v that_o the_o father_n be_v against_o the_o son_n but_o this_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n that_o who_o believe_v it_o he_o shall_v live_v and_o who_o spurn_v against_o it_o be_v the_o more_o guilty_a and_o this_o be_v a_o most_o know_a error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o they_o will_v underprop_v with_o humane_a reason_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o seculare_fw-la estate_n but_o such_o reason_n be_v foolishness_n with_o god_n and_o that_o the_o council_n may_v go_v well_o and_o bring_v good_a unto_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o he_o who_o be_v but_o a_o mean_a man_n but_o rather_o of_o the_o pope_n if_o he_o will_v let_v it_o be_v free_a that_o god_n spirit_n may_v only_o preside_v and_o rule_n and_o lay_v aside_o all_o interest_n and_o usurpation_n and_o craft_n of_o man_n let_v controversy_n be_v judge_v according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n if_o it_o be_v so_o he_o for_o his_o part_n will_v promise_v all_o christian_a sincerity_n and_o charity_n and_o not_o to_o gain_v the_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o any_o mortal_a but_o only_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o establish_v the_o peace_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o can_v so_o great_a good_a be_v expect_v unless_o god_n be_v reconcile_v by_o cast_v away_o hypocrisy_n and_o by_o earnest_a repentance_n for_o our_o sin_n ...._o nor_o do_v he_o regard_v the_o example_n of_o silvius_n &_o bessarion_n these_o dark_a show_n can_v not_o move_v he_o ...._o yea_o the_o legate_n and_o the_o pope_n shall_v embrace_v his_o faith_n rather_o than_o he_o will_v forsake_v it_o histo_n council_n tride_n lib._n 1._o the_o same_o vergerius_n deal_v with_o other_o preacher_n in_o wittenberg_n and_o other_o place_n where_o he_o come_v he_o find_v no_o acceptance_n among_o they_o and_o where_o any_o do_v speak_v submiss_o he_o make_v no_o great_a account_n of_o they_o they_o be_v but_o few_o and_o he_o think_v they_o can_v do_v little_a the_o same_o year_n charles_n duke_n of_o savoy_n be_v persuade_v by_o the_o exile_a bishop_n of_o geneve_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o that_o city_n they_o have_v aid_n from_o the_o swiser_n especial_o from_o berne_n and_o give_v the_o repulse_n the_o swiser_n conquer_v all_o the_o land_n between_o they_o and_o the_o lake_n of_o geneve_n jo._n sleida_o ibid._n xxxi_o in_o the_o year_n 1536._o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o city_n which_o have_v 1536._o the_o agreement_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o l_n supper_n ann._n 1536._o present_v their_o confession_n differ_v from_o the_o augustane_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o sacrament_n consider_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v make_v his_o advantage_n upon_o that_o difference_n if_o the_o council_n shall_v hold_v at_o mantua_n think_v good_a to_o seek_v agreement_n with_o luther_n and_o other_o so_o capito_n &_o bucer_n go_v from_o stawsburgh_n and_o other_o from_o essling_n memming_n frankford_n augsburg_n furfeld_n and_o reutling_n and_o make_v accord_n with_o the_o divine_n of_o wittenberg_n on_o these_o article_n follow_v 1._o we_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n that_o the_o eucharist_n consist_v of_o two_o part_n a_o earthly_a and_o a_o heavenly_a and_o we_o think_v and_o teach_v that_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o and_o substantial_o present_a with_o and_o give_v &_o take_v with_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n 2_o albeit_o we_o deny_v transubstantiation_n nor_o think_v that_o there_o be_v any_o local_a inclusion_n in_o the_o bread_n or_o any_o durable_a conjunction_n with_o out_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o sacramental_a union_n that_o be_v we_o think_v when_o the_o bread_n be_v give_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v also_o present_a and_o be_v true_o give_v for_o without_o the_o use_n extra_fw-la usum_fw-la when_o it_o be_v keep_v in_o a_o box_n or_o be_v show_v in_o procession_n as_o a_o among_o the_o papist_n we_o think_v christ_n body_n be_v not_o present_a 3._o we_o think_v that_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n be_v powerful_a in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o it_o depend_v not_o upon_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o minister_n or_o receiver_n wherefore_o as_o paul_n say_v even_o the_o unworthy_a do_v eat_v the_o sacrament_n so_o we_o think_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o reach_v unto_o the_o unworthy_a and_o the_o unworthy_a receive_v it_o where_o the_o word_n &_o institution_n of_o christ_n be_v keep_v but_o such_o do_v receive_v to_o their_o judgement_n as_o paul_n say_v because_o they_o abuse_v the_o sacrament_n when_o they_o use_v it_o without_o repentance_n and_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v institute_v for_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v testify_v that_o grace_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n be_v apply_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v ingra_v into_o christ_n and_o wash_v in_o his_o blood_n who_o do_v repent_v and_o lift_v up_o themselves_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o follow_v because_o few_o of_o we_o be_v convene_v at_o this_o time_n and_o this_o business_n belong_v unto_o other_o preacher_n and_o magistrate_n of_o both_o party_n we_o can_v not_o yet_o conclude_v the_o matter_n of_o concord_n before_o it_o be_v report_v unto_o other_o also_o but_o see_v all_o the_o divine_n here_o present_a do_v profess_v that_o in_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o confession_n and_o of_o the_o apology_n we_o will_v think_v and_o teach_v whole_o the_o same_o we_o wish_v and_o earnest_o crave_v that_o the_o concord_n may_v be_v make_v and_o begin_v and_o if_o other_o divine_n of_o both_o party_n shall_v approve_v this_o article_n concern_v the_o lord_n supper_n we_o hope_v that_o a_o firm_a concord_n may_v be_v make_v among_o we_o the_o above_o name_v divine_n eleven_o in_o number_n do_v subscribe_v so_o do_v luther_n case_n cruciger_n melanthon_n jo._n bogenhagius_n justus_n menius_n and_o frid._n myconius_n hence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o then_o be_v no_o other_o difference_n in_o the_o article_n of_o confession_n and_o who_o have_v make_v the_o difference_n after_o that_o time_n osiander_n call_v this_o formula_fw-la concordiae_fw-la wittebergensis_fw-la other_o call_v it_o concordia_n smalcaldica_n but_o in_o the_o year_n 1537._o be_v a_o solemn_a meeting_n of_o the_o protestant_n at_o smalcald_a by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o divine_n luther_n write_v 1537._o the_o meeting_n at_o smalcald_a 1537._o the_o head_n of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v propound_v and_o defend_v in_o the_o council_n which_o be_v approve_v and_o subscribe_v by_o the_o minister_n the_o article_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n as_o they_o call_v it_o be_v thus_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n we_o judge_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o supper_n be_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o only_o give_v unto_o and_o receive_v by_o the_o godly_a but_o also_o by_o the_o evil_a and_o wicked_a christian_n and_o that_o not_o one_o kind_n only_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o we_o have_v not_o need_v of_o
equal_a in_o the_o thing_n signify_v or_o diverse_a in_o visible_a sign_n and_o the_o same_o in_o the_o intelligible_a signification_n those_o be_v promissory_a and_o these_o be_v demonstrative_a or_o as_o other_o speak_v the_o old_a be_v prenuntiative_a and_o the_o new_a be_v contestative_a therefore_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a to_o put_v that_o in_o a_o decree_n other_o say_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n must_v be_v condemn_v without_o descend_v into_o particulares_fw-la see_v they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n but_o in_o rite_n and_o no_o other_o difference_n have_v be_v show_v article_n 6_o immediate_o after_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o they_o grace_n be_v give_v the_o dominican_n will_v have_v this_o absolute_o condemn_v the_o scotist_n say_v it_o be_v probable_a because_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o circumcision_n and_o if_o as_o thomas_n say_v child_n be_v save_v before_o christ_n by_o faith_n of_o their_o parent_n child_n now_o be_v in_o a_o worse_a estate_n see_v the_o faith_n of_o parent_n avail_v not_o their_o child_n without_o baptism_n for_o augustin_n hold_v if_o a_o parent_n be_v carry_v his_o child_n to_o be_v baptize_v and_o the_o infant_n to_o die_v on_o the_o way_n this_o infant_n be_v condemn_v they_o all_o condemn_v the_o 7._o and_o 8._o article_n in_o the_o sacrament_n grace_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o only_o who_o believe_v that_o his_o sin_n be_v remit_v grace_n be_v not_o always_o give_v in_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o unto_o all_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n itself_o but_o when_o and_o where_o and_o to_o who_o it_o please_v god_n the_o 9_o article_n deny_v a_o character_n in_o a_o sacrament_n give_v occasion_n of_o more_o talk_v soto_n say_v it_o be_v ground_v on_o holy_a scripture_n and_o be_v ever_o hold_v as_o a_o apostolical_a sacrament_n of_o the_o character_n of_o the_o sacrament_n tradition_n albeit_o the_o word_n character_n be_v not_o use_v by_o the_o father_n other_o say_v gratian_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o it_o and_o scotus_n say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a by_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n nor_o father_n but_o only_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v usual_a unto_o that_o doctor_n by_o a_o kind_n of_o courtsy_n then_o it_o be_v question_v what_o be_v a_o character_n where_o be_v it_o some_o call_v it_o a_o quality_n and_o those_o be_v of_o four_o several_a opinion_n as_o there_o be_v so_o many_o sort_n of_o quality_n some_o call_v it_o a_o spiritual_a power_n some_z a_o habit_n other_o a_o spiritual_a figure_n and_o other_o call_v it_o a_o metaphorical_a quality_n other_o call_v it_o a_o relation_n some_o say_v it_o be_v ensrationis_fw-la no_o less_o variety_n be_v for_o the_o subject_n of_o it_o some_o place_v it_o in_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o soul_n some_o in_o the_o understanding_n some_o in_o the_o will_n and_o some_o in_o the_o tongue_n or_o hand_n then_o how_o many_o sacrament_n have_v a_o character_n some_o say_v only_o three_o which_o be_v not_o iterate_v other_o say_v that_o be_v probable_a but_o not_o necessary_a other_o say_v it_o be_v a_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n because_o innocentius_n 3_o mention_v it_o and_o it_o be_v so_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n article_n 10._o all_o christian_n of_o what_o soever_o sex_n have_v equal_a power_n in_o the_o ministration_n of_o word_n and_o sacrament_n albeit_o none_o administer_v who_o may_v administer_v hold_v this_o article_n so_o much_o as_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v especial_o in_o baptism_n yet_o they_o condemn_v it_o as_o contrary_a unto_o scripture_n to_o tradition_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o they_o condemn_v article_n 11._o a_o bad_a minister_n confer_v not_o a_o sacrament_n article_n 10._o every_o pastor_n have_v power_n at_o his_o pleasure_n to_o protract_v or_o contract_v or_o change_v the_o form_n of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v distinguish_v as_o have_v a_o double_a sense_n by_o form_n may_v be_v understand_v the_o essential_a word_n as_o it_o be_v say_v a_o sacrament_n have_v a_o sensible_a element_n for_o the_o matter_n and_o a_o word_n for_o form_n or_o may_v be_v understand_v the_o rite_n which_o include_v some_o thing_n not_o necessary_a but_o decent_a in_o the_o first_o sense_n they_o make_v a_o canon_n condemn_v the_o article_n and_o for_o the_o other_o they_o make_v another_o canon_n that_o albeit_o accidental_a thing_n admit_v mutation_n yet_o when_o a_o rite_n be_v receive_v by_o public_a authority_n or_o confirm_v by_o common_a custom_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o every_o man_n power_n to_o change_v it_o excep_v the_o pope_n only_o concern_v article_n 3._o of_o the_o minister_n intention_n they_o will_v not_o change_v from_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n hold_v the_o minister_n intention_n necessary_a but_o what_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n intention_n intention_n the_o common_a opinion_n be_v intention_n to_o do_v as_o the_o church_n do_v be_v sufficient_a here_o arise_v a_o difficulty_n because_o man_n opinion_n be_v different_a in_o that_o what_o the_o church_n be_v their_o intention_n to_o do_v as_o the_o church_n do_v may_v also_o be_v different_a some_o say_v it_o may_v rather_o be_v say_v it_o be_v not_o different_a when_o one_o have_v the_o same_o aim_n to_o do_v what_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n and_o observe_v by_o the_o church_n though_o a_o false_a church_n be_v take_v for_o the_o true_a if_o the_o rite_n be_v the_o same_o the_o bishop_n of_o minori_fw-la say_v it_o be_v no_o difficulty_n among_o the_o lutheran_n for_o the_o minister_n intention_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o among_o we_o hold_v that_o the_o sacrament_n give_v grace_n and_o it_o seldom_o happen_v that_o grace_n be_v obtain_v by_o any_o other_o mean_n sure_o little_a babe_n and_o many_o have_v but_o small_a understanding_n be_v save_v no_o other_o way_n if_o a_o priest_n have_v the_o charge_n of_o 4._o or_o 5000._o soul_n be_v a_o infidel_n or_o hide_a hypocrite_n and_o have_v intention_n not_o to_o do_v as_o the_o church_n do_v it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o child_n be_v damn_v and_o all_o penitent_n and_o communicant_o be_v without_o fruit_n neither_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v faith_n supplee_v the_o defect_n because_o faith_n supplee_v nothing_o to_o the_o child_n according_a to_o our_o doctrine_n neither_o avail_v it_o unto_o other_o so_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o attribute_v so_o much_o unto_o faith_n be_v to_o take_v it_o from_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o lutheran_n do_v he_o name_v other_o in_o convenient_n and_o then_o say_v he_o who_o say_v god_n supplee_v by_o his_o omnipotency_n will_v soon_o make_v one_o believe_v that_o god_n have_v provide_v that_o such_o accident_n shall_v not_o happen_v by_o ordain_v that_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n which_o be_v administer_v according_a to_o the_o institute_v rite_n albeit_o the_o minister_n have_v another_o intention_n this_o do_v not_o cross_v the_o common_a doctrine_n or_o florentin_n counsel_n because_o that_o intention_n be_v only_o to_o be_v understand_v which_o be_v manifest_v by_o external_a work_n though_o inward_o it_o may_v be_v contrary_a he_o confirm_v this_o by_o example_n of_o athanasius_n be_v a_o child_n and_o the_o censure_n of_o his_o fact_n by_o the_o famous_a alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n the_o divine_n abide_v still_o for_o the_o intention_n either_o actual_a or_o virtual_a as_o if_o without_o it_o a_o sacrament_n can_v be_v of_o no_o force_n and_o to_o speak_v by_o anticipation_n this_o bishop_n write_v a_o little_a book_n of_o this_o question_n the_o year_n follow_v and_o say_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o synod_n be_v understand_v and_o shall_v be_v expound_v in_o this_o his_o sense_n the_o 14_o article_n be_v ready_o condemn_v sacrament_n be_v ordain_v only_o to_o cherish_v faith_n there_o be_v not_o much_o debate_n of_o baptism_n or_o confirmation_n some_o of_o they_o be_v calumny_n and_o other_o be_v contradictory_n to_o all_o their_o divine_n they_o agree_v ●asily_o in_o frame_v the_o anathematism_n decree●_n difficulty_n in_o frame_v the_o decree●_n but_o no_o way_n can_v they_o agree_v in_o the_o positives_n of_o doctrine_n nor_o of_o reformation_n in_o the_o doctrine_n every_o sect_n be_v stieve_v for_o their_o own_o opinion_n wherefore_o some_o say_v positive_a article_n be_v not_o necessary_a lest_o one_o party_n be_v condemn_v other_o say_v the_o order_n that_o be_v begin_v can_v not_o be_v leave_v and_o diligence_n may_v be_v use_v to_o satisfy_v all_o party_n some_o say_v albeit_o the_o faction_n be_v contentious_a in_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n yet_o all_o submit_v unto_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o synod_n other_o say_v such_o protestation_n of_o submission_n be_v term_n of_o reverence_n and_o shall_v be_v ansver_v with_o
indulgence_n so_o liberal_o confirm_v the_o people_n in_o their_o superstition_n and_o pharasaical_a opinion_n of_o work_n but_o what_o be_v there_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n or_o promote_a piety_n they_o be_v wont_v to_o object_v several_a pretence_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o may_v be_v reduce_v into_o ten_o 1._o the_o stateliness_n of_o their_o church_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o emptiness_n and_o baseness_n of_o other_o 2._o their_o unnion_n and_o harmony_n when_o other_o fall_v into_o shivers_n 3._o their_o antiquity_n and_o other_o be_v but_o of_o yesterday_n 4._o they_o press_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v once_o true_a and_o then_o they_o infer_v therefore_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o yet_o since_o the_o true_a church_n can_v perish_v nor_o be_v change_v in_o the_o essential_o 5._o they_o call_v for_o the_o time_n place_n and_o person_n when_o where_o and_o by_o who_o the_o change_n come_v 6._o where_o do_v our_o church_n lurk_v so_o long_o 7._o the_o author_n of_o the_o reformation_n have_v no_o commission_n to_o attempt_v it_o 8._o they_o vaunt_v of_o their_o succession_n without_o interruption_n 9_o they_o glory_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n which_o can_v be_v deem_v to_o be_v still_o with_o they_o 10._o they_o bewitch_v the_o people_n with_o ambitious_a ostentation_n of_o innumerable_a friar_n who_o among_o they_o have_v renounce_v the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v attain_v eternal_a life_n all_o these_o pretence_n be_v clear_o refute_v by_o io._n calvin_n lib._n de_fw-fr scandalis_n and_o after_o he_o by_o io._n cameron_n lib._n de_fw-fr rom._n ecclesiae_fw-la praejudiciis_fw-la in_o a_o direct_a and_o dogmatical_a way_n but_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v sensible_o demonstrate_v to_o be_v but_o idle_a word_n by_o history_n where_o we_o see_v they_o all_o confute_v not_o only_o by_o such_o as_o do_v separate_v or_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o even_o by_o such_o as_o live_v and_o die_v in_o it_o without_o any_o separation_n except_o in_o judgement_n the_o papist_n can_v deny_v but_o plain_o confess_v that_o their_o church_n be_v corrupt_v both_o in_o the_o pretend_a head_n and_o member_n in_o respect_n of_o manner_n so_o that_o a_o reformation_n be_v necessary_a but_o they_o deny_v the_o corruption_n in_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n and_o they_o say_v though_o the_o pope_n be_v wicked_a man_n yet_o they_o want_v not_o their_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o of_o dispense_n the_o sacred_a mystery_n unto_o the_o first_o part_n the_o apostle_n say_v when_o some_o have_v put_v away_o a_o good_a conscience_n they_o make_v shipwreck_n concern_v the_o faith_n on_o these_o word_n chrysostom_n say_v that_o be_v true_o say_v for_o where_o the_o life_n be_v rebukable_a such_o doctrine_n must_v needs_o follow_v and_o so_o you_o may_v see_v very_o many_o to_o have_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o misery_n and_o to_o have_v return_v into_o heathenish_a rite_n for_o lest_o they_o be_v torment_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o evil_n to_o come_v they_o endeavour_v every_o way_n to_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v false_a which_o our_o religion_n teach_v and_o so_o they_o turn_v from_o the_o faith_n according_o the_o history_n show_v that_o some_o pope_n have_v deny_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o have_v call_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n a_o fable_n as_o for_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n as_o it_o be_v now_o neither_o ecclesiastical_a nor_o civil_a for_o other_o bishop_n have_v power_n within_o their_o own_o diocy_n without_o dependence_n upon_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n of_o ravenna_n and_o other_o in_o italy_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o other_o nation_n and_o pope_n gregory_n the_o i._o as_o other_o before_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n as_o his_o lord_n and_o himself_o his_o servant_n afterward_o the_o pope_n do_v salute_v the_o emperor_n as_o his_o son_n and_o by_o degree_n they_o make_v the_o emperor_n their_o vassal_n servant_n and_o lackey_n so_o that_o if_o peter_n and_o paul_n be_v alive_a on_o earth_n they_o will_v certain_o deny_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o successor_n because_o they_o differ_v beside_o many_o other_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n so_o far_o in_o the_o point_n of_o subjection_n or_o rather_o exalt_v themselves_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n yea_o certain_o they_o will_v call_v the_o pope_n the_o antichrist_n according_a to_o what_o they_o have_v write_v in_o 2_o thess_n 2._o and_o 2_o pet._n 2._o the_o romanist_n say_v that_o in_o this_o point_n they_o have_v advantage_n against_o we_o because_o the_o ancient_n have_v write_v that_o antichrist_n must_v be_v one_o person_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n sit_v in_o jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n true_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n the_o most_o learned_a be_v mistake_v i_o except_v the_o apostle_n concern_v the_o antichrist_n since_o the_o prophecy_n can_v not_o be_v thorough_o understand_v before_o they_o be_v in_o some_o good_a measure_n accomplish_v but_o if_o we_o inquire_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o prudent_a man_n in_o the_o middle_a time_n concern_v the_o antichrist_n and_o general_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v receive_v more_o sure_a information_n and_o certain_o those_o be_v the_o best_a witness_n of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o their_o day_n a_o good_a number_n of_o their_o testimony_n in_o all_o rank_n i_o have_v compile_v for_o this_o end_n in_o this_o book_n which_o be_v humble_o present_v unto_o your_o highness_n first_o trust_v that_o under_o your_o patronage_n other_o may_v the_o more_o willing_o look_v upon_o it_o and_o be_v inform_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o then_o with_o confidence_n it_o shall_v be_v gracious_o accept_v because_o saepè_fw-la tibi_fw-la deus_fw-la hic_fw-la saepe_fw-la legentur_fw-la avi_fw-la with_o the_o same_o travel_n of_o read_v in_o your_o tender_a year_n your_o highness_n may_v learn_v both_o the_o condition_n of_o god_n church_n in_o former_a time_n and_o the_o life_n of_o your_o glorious_a ancestor_n emperor_n and_o king_n of_o who_o you_o have_v your_o illustrious_a descent_n and_o so_o from_o they_o you_o may_v know_v how_o to_o serve_v god_n and_o how_o to_o deport_v yourself_o in_o all_o the_o day_n of_o your_o pilgrimage_n that_o you_o may_v be_v glorious_a in_o heaven_n and_o the_o follow_a age_n may_v have_v your_o example_n outvy_v and_o outstrip_v if_o possible_a all_o the_o williams_n charlse_n henries_n james_n adolphs_n and_o other_o in_o christian_a prudence_n righteousness_n prowess_n and_o temperance_n so_o pray_v your_o highness_n most_o humble_a and_o obedient_a servant_n alex._n petrie_n the_o first_o table_n show_v some_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v now_o controvert_v and_o how_o they_o be_v expound_v in_o former_a time_n for_o understand_v these_o table_n it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o because_o the_o book_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n in_o respect_n of_o number_v the_o page_n therefore_o in_o the_o table_n the_o letter_n s_n signify_v the_o second_o part_n and_o the_o number_n follow_v direct_v unto_o the_o second_o part_n and_o where_o s_n be_v not_o the_o number_n direct_v unto_o the_o first_o part_n likewise_o as_o if_o every_o page_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n the_o letter_z b_o point_v at_o the_o beginning_n or_o first_o part_n of_o the_o page_n the_o letter_n m_o at_o the_o middle_n or_o second_o part_n or_o thereby_o and_o the_o letter_n e_o at_o the_o end_n or_o three_o part_n in_o this_o first_o table_n the_o letter_n p_o stands_z between_o the_o number_n of_o the_o verse_n and_o of_o the_o page_n psal_n li_n 17._o p._n 100_o lxii_o 12._o p._n 27._o e_fw-la cxx_o 3._o p._n 102._o m_o zach._n xi_o 17._o p._n 473._o e_fw-la matth._n xii_o 46._o p._n 212._o e_o xvi_o 18._o p._n 97._o m_o &_o 157._o m_o &_o 172._o e_o &_o 211._o m_o &_o 212._o e_o &_o 293._o e_o &_o 244._o e_o &_o 317._o e_o &_o 331._o m_o &_o 435._o e_o &_o 488._o b._n &_o 576._o m_o &_o s._n 291._o e_fw-la xvi_o 19_o p._n 213._o b_o &_o 543._o e_fw-la xxiii_o 37._o p._n 370._o m_o xxiv_o 24._o p._n 28._o e_fw-la xxvi_o 39_o p._n 349._o m_o luk._n i._o 28._o 35._o p._n 174._o m_o xvi_o 31._o p._n 213._o m_o xxii_o 19_o p._n 98._o e_fw-la 31._o p._n 475._o b_o 32._o p._n 543._o e_fw-la 38._o p._n 347._o m_o joh._n i._o 16._o p._n 27._o e_fw-la 17._o p._n 213._o m_o iii_o 13._o p._n 213._o e_fw-la &_o 223._o m_o s._n 306._o m_o vi_o 35._o p._n 214._o b_o 53._o p._n 102._o m_o 55_o 56._o p._n 175._o m_o 63._o p._n 214._o m_o x._o 1_o 2_o 3._o p._n 214._o m_o &_o 223._o e_fw-la 10_o &_o 28._o p._n 175._o m_o
ad_fw-la a_o 687._o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr ro._n pont._n lib._n 3._o say_v in_o the_o year_n 669._o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o have_v the_o temporal_a sword_n that_o be_v temporal_a government_n for_o aripert_a king_n of_o the_o lombard_n give_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alps_n coctiae_fw-la pope_n the_o first_o temporal_a land_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o genua_n and_o a_o 714._o luithprand_n do_v confirm_v the_o same_o gift_n as_o be_v write_v by_o ado._n vien_fw-it and_o blondus_fw-la dec_fw-la 1._o cap._n 10._o whereupon_o theod._n bibliander_n mark_v say_v bellarm._n that_o the_o first_o papal_a province_n be_v in_o the_o year_n 714._o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o they_o talk_v of_o that_o forge_a donation_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n where_o be_v it_o all_o this_o time_n upon_o that_o passage_n of_o bellarmine_n andrew_n melvin_n master_n of_o the_o university_n of_o st._n andrews_n about_o the_o year_n 1605._o write_v thus_o if_o from_o the_o number_n 699._o wherein_o the_o temporal_a sword_n be_v first_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n you_o will_v take_v off_o the_o number_n of_o year_n from_o christ_n 666._o the_o number_n 666._o birth_n till_o his_o death_n there_o remain_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o time_n of_o sergius_n pipin_n duke_n of_o austria_n come_v to_o have_v place_n in_o the_o court_n of_o france_n sergius_n sit_v 13._o year_n and_o 8._o month_n and_o die_v a_o 701._o chap._n iii_o of_o divers_a country_n 1._o the_o heresy_n of_o former_a age_n and_o now_o the_o arrogant_a presumption_n of_o part_n the_o christian_a church_n be_v divide_v into_o ten_o part_n prelate_n cause_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v divide_v into_o ten_o part_n differ_v all_o one_o from_o another_o either_o in_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o discipline_n and_o rite_n whereof_o they_o have_v be_v too_o zealous_a each_o part_n call_v themselves_o the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n most_o pitiful_a these_o part_n be_v 1._o the_o latin_n or_o western_a church_n which_o have_v be_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 2._o the_o greek_n and_o with_o they_o the_o iberi_n slavoni_fw-la russi_n muscovite_n and_o other_o scatter_v through_o europe_n together_o with_o the_o patriarchal_a sea_n of_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n in_o asia_n and_o the_o patriarchal_a see_v of_o alexandria_n in_o egypt_n all_o which_o be_v bring_v once_o under_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n my_o aim_n have_v be_v principal_o to_o know_v the_o alteration_n of_o these_o two_o part_n at_o what_o time_n and_o where_o the_o schism_n begin_v and_o how_o it_o do_v wax_v and_o so_o have_v i_o follow_v as_o the_o matter_n and_o light_n of_o story_n give_v occasion_n it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o pope_n gregory_n the_o i._o in_o lib._n 7._o ep._n 53._o write_v that_o all_o the_o four_o patriarch_n in_o the_o east_n do_v hold_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n with_o the_o synod_n at_o chalcedon_n and_o other_o general_a counsel_n before_o it_o nor_o do_v they_o ordain_v any_o bishop_n who_o do_v not_o follow_v and_o maintain_v the_o same_o 3._o the_o ethiopian_n or_o abyssine_n under_o prester-john_n in_o africa_n they_o use_v to_o bathe_v or_o baptize_v themselves_o every_o year_n in_o river_n not_o that_o they_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o they_o do_v it_o on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o epiphany_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n baptism_n for_o this_o the_o romanist_n call_v they_o anabaptist_n but_o we_o will_v in_o century_n xiii_o hear_v germanus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n call_v they_o orthodox_n they_o be_v circumcise_v by_o a_o old_a custom_n rather_o than_o of_o religion_n for_o herodotus_n in_o euterpe_n testify_v that_o the_o ethiopian_n and_o egyptian_n in_o his_o time_n and_o before_o be_v circumcise_v 4._o the_o jacobite_n be_v so_o name_v from_o jacob_n zanzal_n a_o syrian_a and_o eutithian_a heretic_n who_o live_v a_o 613._o and_o more_o short_o they_o be_v call_v coptite_n as_o io._n scaliger_n de_fw-fr emend_v temp_n lib._n 5._o write_v from_o a_o city_n in_o egypt_n where_o dioclesian_n slay_v 144000._o martyr_n because_o they_o will_v not_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n this_o sort_n be_v disperse_v in_o egypt_n arabia_n and_o chaldea_n they_o be_v also_o circumcise_v the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n call_v the_o catholic_n tradition_n first_o in_o french_a and_o then_o translate_v into_o english_a search_v the_o difference_n of_o all_o church_n and_o except_o ceremony_n or_o rite_n have_v not_o mark_v great_a difference_n of_o the_o abyssine_n and_o jacobite_n from_o our_o reform_a church_n and_o in_o his_o preface_n he_o say_v they_o pretend_v to_o have_v their_o name_n jacobite_v from_o jacob_n the_o old_a patriarch_n and_o the_o name_n copthes_fw-mi or_o cut_v because_o they_o be_v circumcise_v and_o in_o qu._n 5._o he_o say_v they_o call_v themselves_o christian_n of_o the_o first_o conversion_n 5._o the_o nestorian_n be_v say_v to_o have_v abjure_v the_o heresy_n of_o nestorian_n yet_o keep_v still_o the_o name_n for_o hatred_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o eutithians_n they_o dwell_v disperse_v through_o persia_n india_n and_o tartary_n they_o use_v the_o chaldean_a language_n in_o their_o liturgy_n and_o their_o prelate_n reside_v in_o mosal_n or_o seleucia_n 6._o maronites_n dwell_v in_o lybia_n and_o phoenicia_n they_o use_v the_o arabian_a tongue_n they_o be_v permit_v to_o use_v bell_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o western_a church_n which_o be_v not_o grant_v to_o other_o in_o the_o east_n they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v free_a from_o all_o enemy_n till_o this_o day_n not_o so_o much_o by_o strength_n or_o number_n of_o soldier_n as_o by_o situation_n of_o the_o mountain_n 7._o the_o armenian_n use_n only_o their_o own_o language_n but_o be_v infect_v with_o fond_a heresy_n they_o hold_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o assume_v a_o human_a body_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n but_o have_v a_o incorruptible_a body_n from_o the_o moment_n of_o his_o conception_n and_o this_o body_n say_v they_o shall_v be_v worship_v in_o the_o own_o nature_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o worshipper_n of_o a_o corruptible_a thing_n and_o because_o they_o worship_v the_o cross_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v call_v across_o worshipper_n for_o these_o cause_n they_o be_v contemn_v by_o the_o greek_n but_o pope_n lucius_n the_o ii_o accept_v they_o because_o at_o that_o time_n they_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o the_o roman_n hate_v they_o as_o heretic_n but_o deal_v discreet_o with_o they_o as_o they_o say_v to_o draw_v they_o unto_o their_o obedience_n they_o call_v their_o archbishop_n the_o catholic_n bishop_n 8._o the_o georgian_n be_v so_o call_v from_o st._n george_n who_o badge_n they_o carry_v they_o dwell_v in_o media_n persia_n and_o about_o the_o caspian_a sea_n they_o agree_v with_o the_o greek_n both_o in_o language_n rite_n and_o doctrine_n 9_o suriani_n be_v so_o name_v from_o sur_n a_o city_n of_o assyria_n and_o also_o be_v call_v samaritani_n they_o have_v the_o same_o language_n which_o the_o saracen_n have_v and_o religion_n with_o the_o greek_n for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o they_o have_v leaven_v bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n 10._o mozarabe_n who_o dwell_v first_o in_o arabia_n and_o thence_o they_o go_v in_o colony_n into_o africa_n and_o then_o into_o spain_n but_o none_o of_o they_o remain_v till_o this_o day_n because_o they_o will_v not_o contract_v with_o any_o of_o another_o religion_n in_o their_o service_n they_o be_v bring_v to_o use_v the_o latin_a language_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o they_o will_v not_o change_v in_o sundry_a other_o article_n these_o be_v the_o remnant_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o famous_a church_n the_o most_o part_n of_o which_o agree_v in_o many_o more_o thing_n of_o great_a importance_n than_o those_o wherein_o they_o dissent_v so_o that_o among_o the_o blind_a pagan_n and_o blasphemous_a mahumetist_n the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v invocate_v by_o some_o christian_n with_o more_o piety_n it_o may_v be_v suppose_v than_o among_o other_o where_o there_o be_v great_a liberty_n and_o clearness_n of_o doctrine_n wheresoever_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v we_o must_v think_v some_o be_v effectual_o call_v for_o the_o rain_n come_v from_o heaven_n return_v not_o again_o but_o water_v the_o earth_n and_o make_v it_o to_o bud_v so_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n isa_n 55._o and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o universal_a shepherd_n of_o they_o all_o the_o author_n of_o the_o forenamed_a catholic_n tradition_n in_o the_o annotation_n on_o the_o 5._o question_n say_v there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o hundred_o year_n past_a since_o that_o it_o have_v be_v very_o hard_o to_o judge_v by_o the_o multitude_n
and_o country_n but_o i_o dare_v not_o enclose_v the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n in_o narrow_a bound_n and_o restrain_v he_o in_o a_o little_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o the_o heaven_n can_v comprehend_v every_o one_o of_o the_o believer_n be_v weigh_v not_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o place_n but_o by_o excellency_n of_o faith_n and_o true_a worshipper_n do_v adore_v the_o father_n neither_o at_o jerusalem_n nor_o on_o mount_n garizim_n because_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o his_o worshipper_n must_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n the_o spirit_n blow_v where_o he_o please_v the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o since_o the_o fleece_n of_o judea_n be_v dry_v up_o and_o all_o the_o world_n be_v wet_a with_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n and_o many_o come_n from_o the_o east_n and_o west_n be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n god_n have_v cease_v to_o be_v know_v in_o juda_n only_o and_o his_o name_n to_o be_v great_a in_o israel_n but_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v go_v through_o all_o the_o world_n and_o their_o word_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n our_o saviour_n be_v in_o the_o temple_n say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n arise_v let_v we_o go_v hence_o and_o unto_o the_o jew_n your_o house_n shall_v be_v leave_v desolate_a see_v heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v away_o certain_o all_o earthly_a thing_n shall_v pass_v away_o therefore_o the_o place_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o resurrection_n be_v profitable_a unto_o they_o who_o bear_v their_o cross_n and_o they_o rise_v with_o christ_n daily_o who_o show_v themselves_o of_o so_o great_a habitation_n moreover_o they_o say_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n let_v they_o hear_v from_o the_o apostle_n you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n dwell_v in_o you_o both_o from_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o briton_n be_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n equal_o patent_n antonius_n and_o all_o the_o multitude_n of_o monk_n of_o egypt_n mesopotamia_n pontus_n cappadocia_n and_o armenia_n have_v not_o see_v jerusalem_n and_o without_o this_o city_n the_o gate_n of_o paradise_n be_v patent_n unto_o they_o bless_a hilarion_n although_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o live_v in_o palestina_n see_v jerusalem_n but_o one_o day_n only_o that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o despise_v the_o holy_a place_n for_o their_o vicinity_n nor_o yet_o include_v the_o lord_n in_o one_o place_n you_o will_v say_v why_o go_v i_o so_o far_o off_o to_o the_o end_n thou_o shall_v know_v that_o nothing_o be_v deficient_a to_o thy_o faith_n though_o thou_o have_v not_o see_v jerusalem_n and_o that_o thou_o think_v not_o we_o the_o better_a that_o we_o enjoy_v the_o habitation_n of_o this_o place_n but_o whether_o here_o or_o there_o thou_o shall_v have_v alike_o reward_v according_a to_o thy_o work_n augustine_n also_o in_o his_o book_n the_o morib_n eccl_n cathol_n cap._n 34._o complain_v that_o many_o do_v adore_v grave_n and_o picture_n and_o some_o do_v drink_v upon_o the_o dead_a and_o luxurious_o bury_v themselves_o upon_o the_o bury_v which_o abuse_v the_o church_n indeavour_v daily_o to_o amend_v agreeable_a unto_o this_o complaint_n be_v that_o passage_n in_o gregory_n lib._n 9_o ep._n 71._o whereas_o the_o english_a be_v wont_a to_o sacrifice_v ox_n to_o their_o god_n and_o on_o that_o day_n they_o do_v feast_n and_o make_v merry_a gregory_n advise_v time_n way_n be_v give_v unto_o rite_n for_o a_o time_n augustine_n to_o turn_v that_o devilish_a solemnity_n into_o a_o feast_n of_o dedication_n or_o birthday_n of_o some_o martyr_n and_o then_o to_o kill_v the_o ox_n not_o to_o the_o devil_n but_o to_o praise_n god_n when_o they_o do_v eat_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o hard-hearted_a people_n be_v not_o discourage_v for_o want_v of_o a_o merry_a day_n to_o forsake_v their_o idolatry_n and_o because_o they_o who_o will_v climb_v high_a must_v go_v by_o degree_n and_o lib._n 12._o ep._n 31._o speak_v of_o the_o english_a he_o say_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n who_o say_v i_o give_v you_o milk_n to_o drink_v and_o not_o strong_a food_n i_o have_v yield_v now_o these_o thing_n unto_o they_o but_o not_o to_o be_v hold_v or_o continue_v in_o aftertime_n lest_o the_o good_a which_o be_v late_o plant_v and_o yet_o but_o of_o a_o tender_a root_n be_v pull_v up_o but_o rather_o be_v begin_v may_v be_v strengthen_v and_o carry_v to_o more_o perfection_n true_o if_o those_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v do_v be_v otherwise_o then_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v know_v thou_o that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v for_o the_o thing_n itself_o but_o by_o commiseration_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o not_o only_o these_o feast_n at_o the_o grave_n but_o many_o other_o rite_n come_v into_o the_o church_n by_o condescend_v unto_o the_o rudeness_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o who_o at_o first_o do_v indulge_v they_o do_v not_o simple_o allow_v these_o rite_n but_o will_v by_o degree_n bring_v the_o people_n unto_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o they_o will_v not_o have_v use_v they_o if_o the_o rude_a people_n will_v have_v embrace_v the_o purity_n of_o god_n worship_n but_o afterward_o especial_o in_o the_o western_a church_n religion_n do_v consist_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o such_o rite_n and_o if_o people_n will_v observe_v these_o little_a care_n be_v to_o inform_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n then_o as_o in_o the_o precede_a 200._o year_n people_n have_v affection_n towards_o jerusalem_n so_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v the_o universal_a bishop_n people_n forget_v jerusalem_n for_o a_o space_n and_o look_v towards_o rome_n and_o will_v go_v thither_o to_o confess_v their_o sin_n as_o we_o will_v find_v more_o particular_o and_o yet_o even_o then_o many_o do_v reprove_v it_o as_o follow_v for_o the_o present_a i_o will_v add_v but_o one_o testimony_n of_o bernard_n in_o ep._n 113._o ad_fw-la lelbert_n abbot_n s._n michae_n say_v this_o your_o son_n have_v forsake_v by_o my_o counsel_n his_o peregrination_n though_o he_o undertake_v it_o by_o your_o licence_n have_v return_v for_o when_o we_o know_v that_o he_o have_v attempt_v it_o in_o levity_n and_o you_o have_v yield_v because_o of_o his_o importunity_n we_o reprove_v he_o sharp_o as_o he_o be_v worthy_a and_o persuade_v he_o to_o return_v repent_v so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v guess_v of_o his_o levity_n and_o improbitie_n and_o promise_a amendment_n hereafter_o we_o judge_v righteous_o that_o howsoever_o one_o be_v guilty_a he_o shall_v exerce_fw-la repentance_n in_o his_o own_o monastery_n rather_o than_o by_o go_v from_o province_n to_o province_n for_o the_o purpose_n of_o monk_n be_v not_o to_o seek_v the_o earthly_a but_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n and_o that_o not_o by_o walk_v on_o foot_n but_o by_o amend_v in_o affection_n thus_o bernard_n and_o when_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n and_o relic_n be_v once_o receive_v it_o be_v easy_a for_o priest_n to_o persuade_v pilgrimage_n unto_o this_o or_o that_o monument_n either_o for_o penance_n or_o some_o special_a remedy_n to_o be_v find_v there_o more_o than_o in_o another_o place_n bellarm._n the_o cult_a sanct._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 20._o of_o this_o hear_v pol._n vergil_n say_n we_o read_v not_o go_v to_o any_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o seek_v god_n who_o be_v every_o where_o but_o some_o have_v no_o such_o intention_n but_o rather_o go_v to_o behold_v the_o image_n of_o some_o saint_n never_o think_v in_o all_o their_o journey_n of_o god_n far_o contrary_a to_o the_o worship_n that_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o father_n against_o such_o man_n may_v well_o be_v apply_v that_o of_o persius_n o_o soul_n prone_a to_o the_o earth_n and_o void_a of_o heaven_n why_o shall_v we_o use_v such_o rite_n in_o our_o church_n and_o in_o the_o way_n they_o feed_v themselves_o delicate_o and_o lest_o they_o wax_v sad_a they_o have_v with_o they_o some_o pleasant_n i_o will_v not_o say_v their_o whore_n or_o mistress_n to_o cause_v they_o to_o laugh_v and_o tell_v they_o merry_a sport_n as_o it_o be_v to_o refresh_v their_o weary_a mind_n o_o vain_a travel_n we_o shall_v sojourn_v that_o be_v sequester_v from_o domestic_a care_n which_o divert_v we_o from_o think_v upon_o the_o other_o life_n to_o dart_v the_o body_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o do_v service_n unto_o reason_n and_o give_v unto_o the_o poor_a as_o christ_n command_v vergil_n in_o interpret_v orat._n dom._n 9_o out_o of_o what_o be_v say_v may_v be_v partly_o see_v what_o be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o western_a monk_n of_o monk_n church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n gregory_n the_o i._o and_o that_o after_o he_o a_o thick_a mist_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n as_o indeed_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n perish_v
boniface_n in_o these_o word_n as_o for_o these_o thing_n whereof_o you_o demand_v what_o shall_v be_v receive_v and_o what_o refuse_v especial_o of_o fowl_n as_o jaw_n crow_n and_o stork_n christian_n shall_v never_o eat_v of_o these_o and_o far_o rather_o shall_v they_o abstain_v from_o hare_n bever_n and_o wild_a stag_n like_o a_o manichean_a he_o speak_v against_o the_o apostle_n 1_o tim._n 4._o in_o another_o epistle_n he_o bid_v boniface_n exact_v a_o tribute_n of_o the_o sclavi_n lest_o sometime_o they_o challenge_v their_o own_o land_n and_o by_o pay_v tribute_n they_o may_v know_v that_o their_o land_n have_v a_o superior_a who_o give_v he_o their_o land_n he_o now_o will_v encroach_v nevertheless_o in_o another_o epistle_n he_o say_v he_o do_v swoon_v when_o he_o read_v in_o a_o letter_n that_o boniface_n have_v sell_v pall_v for_o money_n he_o sit_v about_o 10._o year_n and_o die_v a_o 752._o 8._o stephen_n the_o i._o die_v on_o the_o three_o day_n after_o his_o coronation_n some_o do_v not_o reckon_v he_o 9_o stephen_n the_o ii_o be_v offend_v with_o aistulph_n who_o exact_v tribute_n from_o the_o church-land_n and_o because_o it_o be_v refuse_v take_v up_o arms._n stephen_n see_v no_o appearance_n of_o aid_n to_o come_v from_o the_o emperor_n do_v advise_v with_o the_o people_n that_o some_o writing_n may_v be_v direct_v unto_o pippin_n the_o letter_n france_n the_o pope_n letter_n unto_o france_n begin_v thus_o unto_o the_o most_o excellent_a lord_n pipin_n charles_n and_o carloman_n three_o king_n and_o our_o roman_a patrici●_n and_o unto_o all_o bishop_n abbot_n priest_n and_o monk_n and_o to_o the_o glorious_a duke_n and_o count_n and_o unto_o the_o whole_a army_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n stephen_n pope_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n duke_n count_n people_n and_o army_n of_o the_o roman_n all_o be_v in_o anguish_n observe_v this_o be_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n only_o nor_o of_o the_o clergy_n only_o but_o likewise_o of_o the_o duke_n and_o other_o people_n and_o 2._o the_o name_n of_o the_o king_n be_v set_v before_o the_o pope_n name_n with_o how_o doleful_a and_o bitter_a grief_n we_o be_v encompass_v on_o every_o side_n with_o how_o great_a perplexity_n and_o doubtfulness_n we_o be_v distress_v and_o how_o many_o tear_n our_o eye_n do_v shed_v because_o of_o the_o continual_a trouble_n which_o be_v multiply_v upon_o we_o we_o think_v that_o the_o small_a part_n of_o all_o the_o element_n do_v declare_v for_o who_o behold_v our_o tribulation_n will_v not_o mourn_v who_o hear_v our_o calamity_n will_v not_o howl_v therefore_o let_v we_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o good_a susanna_n affliction_n be_v on_o every_o side_n and_o we_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v o_o you_o most_o true_o christian_n behold_v the_o day_n of_o trouble_n the_o day_n of_o mourning_n and_o bitterness_n be_v come_v upon_o we_o see_v it_o be_v come_v as_o we_o be_v fear_v from_o the_o lombard_n for_o we_o be_v afflict_v distress_a and_o on_o every_o side_n besiege_v by_o their_o most_o ungodly_a king_n aistulph_n and_o that_o nation_n and_o with_o the_o prophet_n we_o pray_v the_o lord_n say_v help_v we_o o_o lord_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o thy_o name_n deliver_v we_o and_o again_o take_v the_o sword_n and_o the_o shield_n and_o arise_v to_o help_v we_o for_o behold_v please_v to_o know_v how_o the_o covenant_n of_o peace_n be_v violate_v by_o the_o foresay_a wicked_a aistulph_n and_o his_o nation_n and_o we_o can_v obtain_v nothing_o that_o be_v capitulate_v and_o confirm_v by_o bond_n of_o sacrament_n and_o now_o because_o no_o condition_n be_v keep_v unto_o we_o and_o on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o january_n all_o the_o army_n of_o the_o lombard_n have_v make_v their_o rendezvous_n in_o tuscia_n and_o have_v camp_v at_o the_o gate_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n and_o the_o gate_n portuen_o and_o aistulph_n himself_o with_o another_o army_n have_v fix_v their_o tent_n at_o the_o gate_n of_o salaria_n and_o other_o gate_n and_o have_v oft_o say_v unto_o we_o open_v unto_o i_o the_o gate_n of_o salaria_n and_o i_o will_v enter_v into_o your_o city_n and_o give_v i_o your_o highpriest_n and_o i_o will_v show_v clemency_n unto_o you_o if_o not_o beware_v lest_o when_o i_o have_v batter_v down_o your_o wall_n i_o kill_v you_o altogether_o with_o the_o sword_n and_o let_v i_o see_v who_o can_v deliver_v you_o out_o of_o my_o hand_n wherefore_o we_o can_v scarce_o direct_v this_o bearer_n by_o sea_n with_o these_o present_n unto_o your_o christianity_n we_o have_v write_v they_o with_o many_o tear_n wherefore_o our_o belove_a i_o beseech_v you_o and_o as_o if_o i_o be_v present_a i_o adjure_v by_o the_o mystery_n before_o the_o true_a and_o live_a god_n and_o before_o saint_n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o with_o great_a speed_n you_o help_v we_o lest_o we_o perish_v see_v under_o god_n we_o have_v commit_v all_o our_o life_n into_o your_o hand_n forsake_v we_o not_o our_o belove_a come_v forward_o and_o help_v we_o who_o under_o god_n fly_v unto_o you_o that_o when_o you_o have_v bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n may_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o future_a trial_n say_v our_o lord_n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n behold_v we_o thy_o client_n we_o perfect_v our_o course_n have_v keep_v the_o faith_n the_o church_n that_o be_v commend_v unto_o thou_o we_o have_v defend_v and_o deliver_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o oppressor_n and_o we_o stand_v without_o spot_n before_o thou_o do_v offer_n unto_o thou_o the_o child_n which_o thou_o do_v commit_v unto_o we_o safe_a and_o sound_a from_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n then_o both_o in_o this_o world_n and_o that_o to_o come_v you_o shall_v receive_v the_o joy_n of_o heavenly_a reward_n after_o this_o the_o pope_n send_v another_o epistle_n in_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o if_o it_o peter_n another_o letter_n in_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n have_v be_v write_v from_o heaven_n it_o begin_v thus_o peter_n call_v a_o apostle_n grace_n and_o peace_n and_o power_n to_o deliver_v the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n commit_v unto_o i_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n be_v full_o give_v from_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n unto_o you_o most_o excellent_a man_n pipin_n charles_n and_o carloman_n three_o king_n and_o to_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n abbot_n presbyter_n and_o all_o religious_a monk_n and_o also_o to_o the_o duke_n count_n and_o all_o the_o general_a army_n and_o people_n of_o france_n i_o peter_n apostle_n while_o i_o be_o call_v by_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n through_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o supreme_a clemency_n and_o ordain_v by_o his_o power_n to_o be_v enlightner_n of_o all_o the_o world_n the_o lord_n himself_o our_o god_n confirm_v it_o with_o these_o word_n go_v teach_v all_o nation_n and_o again_o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v wherefore_o all_o who_o hear_v and_o fulfil_v my_o preach_n may_v true_o believe_v that_o in_o this_o world_n at_o the_o command_n of_o god_n their_o sin_n be_v loose_v and_o be_v pure_a and_o without_o spot_n they_o shall_v enter_v into_o that_o life_n therefore_o i_o peter_n the_o apostle_n of_o god_n who_o have_v you_o my_o adopt_a child_n to_o defend_v from_o the_o enemy_n hand_n this_o roman_a city_n and_o the_o people_n commit_v of_o god_n unto_o i_o or_o to_o deliver_v the_o house_n wherein_o i_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n do_v rest_n from_o the_o profanation_n of_o the_o gentile_n provoke_v all_o your_o love_n do_v exhort_v and_o protest_v do_v admonish_v you_o to_o deliver_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o by_o divine_a power_n be_v commend_v unto_o i_o see_v they_o suffer_v very_o great_a affliction_n and_o oppression_n by_o the_o most_o wicked_a nation_n of_o the_o lombard_n think_v not_o otherwise_o but_o trust_v it_o for_o certain_a that_o i_o myself_o be_o stand_v alive_a in_o the_o flesh_n before_o you_o and_o our_o lady_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n the_o virgin_n mary_n with_o we_o do_v adjure_v you_o with_o the_o great_a obligation_n and_o protest_v and_o admonish_v and_o command_v etc._n etc._n behold_v with_o what_o foolery_n and_o impiety_n they_o will_v bewitch_v the_o world_n but_o pipin_n nor_o his_o brethren_n do_v not_o levy_v a_o army_n until_o pope_n stephen_n come_v into_o france_n when_o he_o take_v his_o journey_n he_o commend_v himself_o unto_o saint_n mary_n and_o his_o sheep_n unto_o saint_n peter_n lib._n pontific_n pipin_n hear_v of_o his_o come_n send_v his_o son_n charles_n a_o hundred_o mile_n to_o meet_v he_o and_o when_o he_o come_v within_o three_o league_n of_o carisiac_a pipin_n go_v forth_o
the_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n pipin_n die_v and_o his_o son_n charles_n and_o carloman_n govern_v both_o their_o own_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n with_o small_a kindness_n nevertheless_o they_o send_v 12._o bishop_n out_o of_o france_n and_o germany_n behold_v what_o a_o reformation_n he_o annull_v the_o election_n of_o constantine_n he_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v whip_v and_o pick_v out_o his_o eye_n he_o annull_v all_o his_o consecration_n and_o other_o act_n he_o censure_v the_o synod_n at_o constantinople_n and_o ordain_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v worship_v by_o all_o christian_n with_o great_a affection_n and_o honour_n and_o he_o accurse_v the_o greek_n if_o they_o do_v not_o restore_v due_a honour_n unto_o image_n because_o if_o prince_n may_v let_v up_o their_o statue_n in_o town_n and_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o set_v up_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o his_o saint_n their_o condition_n be_v inferior_a to_o prince_n after_o the_o synod_n he_o practise_v against_o the_o emperor_n as_o be_v touch_v many_o of_o his_o epistle_n be_v extant_a unto_o charles_n and_o carloman_n in_o one_o he_o crave_v to_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o baptism_n of_o carloman_n son_n as_o his_o predecessor_n have_v be_v to_o king_n pipin_n in_o another_o he_o dissuade_v charles_n from_o alliance_n with_o the_o lombard_n as_o a_o faithless_a and_o base_a nation_n he_o adjure_v he_o to_o obey_v his_o exhortation_n and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o he_o assure_v he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o lord_n bless_a peter_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v be_v separate_v from_o god_n and_o be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a fire_n but_o if_o he_o will_v obey_v he_o shall_v deserve_v the_o reward_n of_o eternal_a joy_n with_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n in_o all_o his_o epistle_n be_v not_o any_o mention_n of_o christ_n by_o these_o letter_n he_o persuade_v charles_n to_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n bertha_n the_o sister_n of_o desiderius_n after_o they_o have_v cohabit_v one_o year_n he_o do_v fear_n if_o the_o alliance_n have_v continue_v desiderius_n may_v pull_v his_o wing_n he_o sit_v 7._o year_n 12._o hadrian_n or_o adrian_n the_o i._o will_v be_v more_o forward_o in_o maintain_v irene_n letter_n of_o the_o pope_n unto_o irene_n image_n and_o do_v write_v in_o defence_n of_o they_o call_v they_o layman_n book_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o irene_n and_o constantine_n he_o say_v you_o will_v rest_v in_o and_o embrace_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o bless_a peter_n and_o paul_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o it_o have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o former_a emperor_n who_o with_o all_o their_o heart_n do_v love_v his_o vicar_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v defender_n of_o your_o kingdom_n and_o make_v all_o barbarous_a nation_n subject_a unto_o your_o foot_n that_o wheresoever_o you_o go_v they_o shall_v make_v you_o victorious_a see_v they_o be_v prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o have_v begin_v the_o catholic_a and_o orthodox_n faith_n have_v by_o their_o writing_n as_o enact_v law_n command_v their_o faith_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o who_o be_v to_o succeed_v in_o their_o seat_n and_o so_o our_o church_n both_o worship_v their_o holy_a figure_n and_o our_o temple_n be_v adorn_v with_o their_o worshipful_a image_n until_o this_o day_n observe_v 1._o that_o peter_n and_o paul_n be_v conjoin_v and_o coequal_a 2._o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o not_o of_o christ_n 3._o he_o speak_v of_o the_o protection_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o not_o of_o god_n 4._o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v the_o beginner_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o he_o call_v it_o their_o faith_n no_o word_n here_o of_o faith_n in_o god_n and_o christ_n 5._o he_o say_v all_z who_o succeed_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v to_o observe_v their_o faith_n but_o the_o pope_n of_o follow_a age_n have_v not_o observe_v the_o faith_n which_o peter_n and_o paul_n have_v leave_v in_o their_o writing_n ro._n barn_n in_o adrian_n the_o i._o say_v all_o the_o care_n of_o the_o pope_n than_o be_v on_o stone_n or_o in_o build_v church_n or_o in_o make_v image_n or_o in_o enrich_v the_o church_n or_o in_o excommunicate_v prince_n and_o in_o such_o toy_n but_o in_o their_o own_o ministry_n they_o be_v seldom_o or_o never_o occupy_v in_o catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 8._o be_v make_v mention_n of_o 44._o epistle_n write_v by_o he_o unto_o king_n charles_n in_o one_o he_o complain_v of_o arechis_n duke_n of_o benevento_n charles_n and_o unto_o king_n charles_n that_o after_o charles_n have_v return_v from_o capua_n he_o have_v send_v unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o have_v seek_v his_o aid_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o patriciatus_fw-la and_o therefore_o he_o crave_v the_o king_n aid_n for_o advance_v the_o church_n in_o the_o 3._o he_o thank_v he_o that_o he_o have_v give_v rosellae_n populanium_n and_o benevento_n unto_o saint_n peter_n he_o complain_v of_o their_o untowardness_n and_o of_o the_o enterprise_n of_o the_o greek_n against_o who_o he_o crave_v that_o charles_n will_v have_v his_o army_n in_o readiness_n in_o the_o 5._o he_o intreat_v his_o aid_n against_o the_o venetian_n who_o have_v take_v ravenna_n in_o the_o 8._o he_o thank_v he_o for_o a_o cross_n send_v unto_o he_o and_o show_v that_o he_o pray_v continual_o for_o he_o and_o for_o his_o father_n of_o bless_a memory_n he_o intreat_v he_o to_o cause_v they_o to_o restore_v the_o territory_n of_o rosellae_n populonium_n and_o benevento_n and_o promise_v he_o reward_v from_o saint_n peter_n although_o charles_n when_o he_o have_v take_v these_o city_n from_o the_o right_a owner_n give_v thew_v to_o the_o pope_n yet_o he_o quit_v not_o his_o superiority_n as_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o 23._o epistle_n wherein_o adrian_n show_v that_o the_o greek_a ambassador_n have_v consult_v with_o the_o relict_n of_o duke_n arechis_n to_o take_v the_o dukedom_n of_o benevento_n from_o charles_n and_o therefore_o he_o advise_v he_o to_o provide_v for_o his_o own_o security_n and_o for_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n in_o the_o 9_o he_o answer_v unto_o a_o question_n propound_v by_o charles_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o some_o saxon_n who_o be_v relapse_n into_o paganism_n after_o long_a penance_n they_o may_v be_v receive_v in_o the_o 11._o he_o exhort_v bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o put_v on_o not_o temporal_a but_o spiritual_a armour_n that_o be_v they_o shall_v wait_v on_o fast_v and_o pray_v mark_v that_o as_o yet_o bishop_n have_v not_o begin_v to_o fight_v battle_n but_o they_o persuade_v prince_n to_o fight_v for_o they_o and_o at_o that_o time_n when_o some_o bishop_n will_v have_v take_v arm_n the_o pope_n do_v dissuade_v they_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o say_v the_o dream_n of_o john_n a_o monk_n be_v false_a wherein_o he_o be_v tell_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v err_v from_o the_o faith_n note_n in_o the_o 29_o 30_o and_o 31._o he_o complain_v that_o leo_n bishop_n of_o ravenna_n will_v not_o perform_v due_a obedience_n unto_o saint_n peter_n that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o charles_n have_v take_v sundry_a thing_n from_o saint_n peter_n and_o have_v attempt_v to_o take_v pentapolis_n which_o king_n pipin_n have_v give_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n he_o show_v that_o pope_n stephen_n once_o depose_v sergius_n bishop_n of_o ravenna_n for_o his_o disobedience_n and_o in_o the_o end_n he_o intreat_v he_o to_o cause_n leo_n to_o give_v he_o obedience_n and_o to_o make_v the_o exarchate_o likewise_o subject_a all_o the_o other_o epistle_n be_v of_o this_o stamp_n for_o enrich_v and_o advance_v the_o church_n and_o to_o expel_v the_o greek_n with_o their_o adherent_n out_o of_o italy_n commend_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o set_v up_o peter_n in_o the_o room_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o expound_v peter_n say_v behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o until_o the_o end_n and_o he_o call_v peter_n the_o intercessor_n the_o protector_n and_o rewarder_n and_o he_o command_v that_o prayer_n be_v make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n this_o adrian_n in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o the_o spaniard_n call_v the_o roman_a church_n head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o who_o separate_v from_o she_o say_v he_o separate_v from_o the_o christian_a faith_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v author_n of_o that_o decree_n in_o gratian._n cause_n 25._o quest_n 1._o generali_fw-la by_o a_o general_a decree_n we_o ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o execrable_a anathema_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v guilty_a before_o god_n for_o ever_o as_o a_o transgressor_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n whosoever_o king_n or_o bishop_n or_o potentate_n that_o shall_v from_o henceforth_o permit_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n to_o be_v violate_v in_o any_o thing_n
from_o she_o and_o apollinaris_n who_o say_v christ_n be_v god_n and_o flesh_n only_o and_o never_o assume_v a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o pelagius_n who_o say_v christ_n be_v not_o the_o redeemer_n of_o infant_n because_o they_o be_v conceive_v without_o iniquity_n and_o bear_v of_o their_o mother_n without_o sin_n and_o have_v no_o sin_n to_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o so_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o saviour_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n and_o also_o other_o heretic_n who_o deny_v the_o lord_n who_o buy_v they_o with_o the_o price_n of_o his_o blood_n because_o they_o preach_v he_o not_o as_o truth_n show_v he_o but_o as_o they_o have_v feign_v and_o therefore_o be_v become_v stranger_n from_o the_o redeemer_n they_o do_v expect_v nothing_o certain_o but_o the_o pit_n of_o perdition_n he_o write_v three_o book_n on_o the_o song_n of_o song_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v only_o in_o refutation_n of_o another_o book_n write_v by_o julian_n his_o epistle_n to_o celanen_n in_o campania_n a_o pelagian_a for_o a_o taste_n behold_v what_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 1._o page_n julian_n teach_v that_o we_o by_o arbitrement_n of_o freewill_n may_v do_v good_a thing_n what_o we_o will_v albeit_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n we_o may_v perfect_v they_o the_o more_o easy_o as_o traveller_n may_v walk_v on_o foot_n but_o with_o less_o turmoil_n without_o doubt_n if_o they_o ride_v on_o a_o horse_n he_o have_v no_o mind_n of_o the_o apostle_n admonition_n say_v work_v out_o your_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a for_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v and_o which_o be_v more_o weighty_a he_o be_v a_o adversary_n to_o he_o who_o say_v not_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v some_o little_a thing_n but_o say_v he_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o and_o he_o teach_v that_o those_o only_o can_v behold_v the_o hide_a mystery_n of_o the_o law_n who_o instruction_n and_o piety_n have_v make_v wise_a forget_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o reveal_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o scripture_n even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o idiot_n as_o the_o evangelist_n say_v then_o he_o open_v unto_o they_o their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o evangelist_n witness_v that_o they_o be_v unlearned_a when_o he_o say_v they_o see_v the_o constancy_n of_o peter_n and_o john_n and_o know_v that_o they_o be_v without_o letter_n and_o idiot_n do_v admire_v and_o he_o say_v that_o holy_a and_o generous_a love_n ingraft_v in_o we_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o light_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o nature_n and_o unto_o our_o last_o old_a age_n lean_v to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o mind_n may_v continue_v without_o any_o loss_n of_o its_o vigour_n certain_o he_o believe_v not_o the_o lord_n word_n without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o nor_o what_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o many_o thing_n we_o all_o offend_v in_o these_o word_n beda_n confute_v both_o the_o pelagian_o and_o semipelagian_o of_o justification_n he_o say_v on_o luke_n 1_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a be_v not_o to_o presume_v of_o righteousness_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o to_o seek_v salvation_n by_o faith_n that_o although_o they_o be_v under_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o they_o shall_v understand_v that_o they_o be_v save_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n for_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n and_o peter_n say_v of_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n that_o neither_o we_o nor_o our_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o but_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v saby_n the_o grace_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o they_o and_o on_o 1_o pet._n 4._o god_n be_v honour_v by_o our_o work_n when_o all_o that_o we_o do_v well_o or_o according_a to_o his_o will_n we_o give_v it_o not_o all_o unto_o our_o merit_n but_o to_o his_o grace_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n what_o evil_a we_o do_v we_o depute_v it_o only_o unto_o our_o ignorance_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v on_o cant._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 6._o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n because_o it_o be_v build_v through_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o one_o peace_n and_o one_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o consort_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o which_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n she_o be_v call_v a_o dove_n and_o she_o be_v call_v perfect_a not_o because_o she_o only_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o people_n of_o the_o righteous_a but_o also_o be_v perfect_v by_o receive_v all_o divine_a grace_n and_o virtue_n here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o restrain_v or_o subject_v the_o church_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o de_fw-fr tabernac_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o it_o be_v say_v unto_o peter_n metaphorical_o upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v on_o our_o saviour_n who_o he_o have_v confess_v will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o on_o revel_n 21_o when_o it_o be_v say_v foundation_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n the_o teacher_n or_o grace_n be_v mean_v when_o foundation_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n he_o be_v mean_v who_o be_v foundation_n of_o foundation_n here_o be_v no_o prerogative_n of_o peter_n above_o the_o other_o apostle_n of_o prayer_n on_o prov._n chap._n 2._o he_o say_v we_o shall_v invocate_v or_o pray_v unto_o none_o but_o god_n of_o christ_n redemption_n on_o 1_o john_n chap._n 2._o at_o these_o word_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n be_v a_o propitiation_n not_o for_o they_o only_o unto_o who_o live_v then_o in_o the_o flesh_n john_n do_v write_v but_o also_o for_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v disperse_v in_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o world_n even_o from_o the_o first_o elect_v unto_o the_o last_o who_o shall_v be_v bear_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o he_o write_v express_o against_o the_o donatist_n but_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n he_o condemn_v the_o restriction_n thereof_o unto_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o particular_a place_n and_o when_o he_o limit_v the_o propitation_n unto_o the_o elect_n he_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o the_o reprobate_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v behold_v how_o john_n observe_v that_o humility_n which_o he_o teach_v certain_o he_o be_v a_o just_a and_o great_a man_n who_o have_v drink_v the_o secret_n of_o mystery_n from_o the_o lord_n breast_n and_o nevertheless_o he_o say_v not_o you_o have_v i_o your_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n but_o we_o have_v a_o advocate_n and_o he_o say_v we_o have_v and_o not_o you_o have_v he_o will_v rather_o put_v himself_o in_o the_o number_n of_o sinner_n that_o he_o may_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v his_o advocate_n than_o put_v himself_o a_o advocate_n for_o christ_n and_o be_v find_v among_o the_o proud_a which_o shall_v be_v damn_v for_o all_o do_v the_o head_n make_v request_n of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v who_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o intercede_v for_o we_o the_o lord_n intercede_v for_o we_o not_o by_o word_n but_o by_o miseration_n and_o he_o add_v the_o just_a because_o the_o just_a advocate_n will_v not_o plead_v unjust_a cause_n how_o shall_v not_o the_o just_a one_o defend_v we_o in_o judgement_n if_o now_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o accuse_v ourselves_o unjust_a why_o shall_v he_o not_o be_v just_a who_o now_o by_o tear_n be_v earnest_n saevit_fw-la against_o his_o own_o unrighteousness_n here_o he_o speak_v express_o of_o intercession_n and_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o intercessor_n in_o heaven_n but_o the_o head_n for_o all_o who_o mourn_v for_o their_o sin_n of_o perseverance_n he_o say_v on_o col._n 4._o at_o the_o end_n where_o the_o apostle_n say_v i_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n be_v confident_a that_o he_o who_o have_v begin_v the_o good_a work_n in_o you_o he_o will_v perfect_v it_o until_o what_o else_o do_v he_o promise_v but_o perseverance_n till_o the_o end_n through_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o when_o the_o apostle_n judas_n say_v unto_o he_o who_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v you_o without_o offence_n do_v he_o very_o clear_o show_v that_o perseverance_n in_o good_a until_o the_o end_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n in_o the_o first_o place_n beda_n show_v the_o certainty_n of_o perseverance_n as_o a_o thing_n promise_v and_o in_o the_o other_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o work_n of_o man_n by_o himself_o alone_o even_o though_o the_o man_n be_v renew_v but_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o on_o rom._n 8._o he_o say_v we_o shall_v stand_v the_o call_v whereby_o they_o be_v elect_v not_o who_o be_v elect_v because_o they_o shall_v believe_v but_o who_o be_v
cause_n precede_v not_o efficient_a but_o deficient_a that_o be_v the_o forsake_v of_o the_o chief_a good_a and_o covet_v inferior_a thing_n when_o the_o soul_n fall_v from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o covet_v inferior_a thing_n ....._o but_o albeit_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o ill_a will_n nor_o any_o subsist_v nature_n but_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o reasonable_a creature_n fall_v from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o creator_n yet_o we_o may_v not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o just_a revenger_n of_o our_o wicked_a thought_n or_o eternal_a predestinator_n of_o just_a judgement_n and_o vengeance_n which_o this_o fellow_n will_v by_o such_o ambiguity_n make_v void_a again_o this_o man_n say_v there_o be_v no_o predestination_n of_o god_n but_o of_o they_o who_o be_v prepare_v for_o everlasting_a blessedness_n we_o know_v sure_o that_o this_o be_v a_o error_n of_o this_o age_n ....._o it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o the_o word_n predestination_n be_v not_o express_o mention_v yet_o because_o thing_n concern_v both_o predestination_n appear_v and_o be_v declare_v most_o open_o the_o apostle_n most_o confident_o use_v their_o testimony_n for_o confirm_v this_o doctrine_n and_o have_v give_v they_o to_o be_v so_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o by_o his_o authority_n and_o example_n and_o inform_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o contentious_o and_o idle_o strive_v for_o the_o word_n predestination_n in_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n but_o by_o godly_a and_o peaceable_a understanding_n wheresoever_o the_o matter_n be_v manifest_o declare_v we_o shall_v without_o doubt_v acknowledge_v and_o maintain_v the_o predestination_n of_o god_n and_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v how_o shall_v the_o world_n be_v judge_v righteous_o who_o the_o necessity_n of_o predestination_n force_v to_o perish_v far_o be_v it_o that_o any_o of_o we_o shall_v say_v it_o because_o it_o be_v most_o open_a blasphemy_n that_o god_n by_o his_o predestination_n force_v any_o man_n to_o sin_n and_o to_o perish_v by_o sin_n but_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o predestination_n who_o continue_v in_o their_o sin_n he_o have_v decree_v to_o punish_v he_o rather_o call_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n and_o stir_v in_o they_o by_o hear_v a_o wholesome_a terror_n that_o they_o fear_v may_v be_v amend_v and_o amend_v shall_v not_o be_v damn_v it_o be_v also_o most_o false_a that_o the_o fellow_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o predestination_n of_o punishment_n for_o if_o punishment_n be_v not_o predestinate_a for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o all_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o they_o truth_n will_v not_o say_v go_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o where_o he_o say_v predestination_n be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n bounty_n it_o be_v also_o false_a for_o it_o be_v find_v and_o true_o understand_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o just_a damnation_n of_o which_o damn_v through_o their_o own_o deserve_n and_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n when_o this_o man_n say_v cap._n 14._o §_o 4._o that_o they_o be_v just_o forsake_v in_o the_o damn_a mass_n according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o they_o be_v suffer_v to_o live_v wicked_o and_o be_v at_o last_o to_o be_v condemn_v with_o everlasting_a fire_n even_o unwilling_o and_o contradict_v himself_o he_o say_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o in_o divine_a judgement_n they_o be_v predestinate_a unto_o everlasting_a life_n for_o if_o all_o that_o mass_n be_v condemn_v certain_o it_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o without_o doubt_n unto_o everlasting_a perdition_n and_o punishment_n and_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n how_o he_o say_v cap._n 14._o that_o god_n have_v predestinate_a pain_n unto_o sinner_n and_o have_v not_o predestinate_a sinner_n unto_o pain_n for_o when_o he_o predestinate_v pain_n for_o they_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a who_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v and_o when_o he_o confess_v say_v the_o foreknowed_a if_o god_n foreknow_v certain_o who_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o these_o torment_n what_o else_o do_v he_o when_o he_o prepare_v most_o certain_a pain_n for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o but_o predestinate_v they_o certain_o for_o pain_n for_o sure_o these_o only_a shall_v suffer_v who_o he_o have_v foreknow_v to_o suffer_v and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o by_o unchangeable_a prescience_n he_o have_v foreknow_v they_o for_o pain_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v that_o what_o he_o foreknow_v to_o be_v just_o he_o have_v not_o predestinate_v to_o do_v it_o just_o there_o be_v indeed_o another_o condition_n of_o man_n law_n who_o so_o ordain_v certain_a punishment_n unto_o delinquent_n that_o nevertheless_o they_o know_v not_o those_o which_o do_v sin_n thus_o or_o which_o shall_v be_v torment_v in_o these_o punishment_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v appoint_v and_o prepare_v punishment_n for_o sinner_n and_o know_v not_o that_o the_o punishment_n be_v just_a and_o yet_o not_o appoint_v for_o punishment_n the_o sinner_n who_o they_o know_v not_o at_o all_o but_o if_o they_o know_v certain_o the_o person_n which_o be_v worthy_a of_o those_o punishment_n they_o may_v just_o ordain_v they_o for_o the_o pain_n as_o they_o appoint_v the_o pain_n for_o delinquent_n as_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o judgement_n who_o they_o find_v guilty_a of_o capital_a crime_n they_o both_o rehearse_v unto_o they_o the_o death_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o law_n and_o by_o open_a sentence_n they_o adjudge_v they_o unto_o death_n which_o be_v do_v by_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o judgement_n that_o they_o dare_v appoint_v as_o punishment_n for_o sinner_n so_o sinner_n for_o punishment_n see_v then_o both_o these_o be_v right_o and_o just_o do_v in_o the_o court_n of_o man_n be_v inform_v and_o direct_v according_a to_o certain_a knowledge_n that_o they_o discern_v just_o and_o irreprovable_o pain_n for_o sinner_n and_o sinner_n for_o pain_n and_o yet_o not_o any_o of_o those_o guilty_a person_n be_v compel_v unto_o sin_n by_o the_o law_n nor_o judge_n but_o only_o because_o he_o who_o have_v sin_v be_v just_o punish_v how_o much_o rather_o may_v we_o believe_v certain_o that_o this_o be_v do_v in_o divine_a judgement_n that_o because_o by_o eternal_a knowledge_n he_o know_v the_o pain_n which_o in_o justice_n be_v due_a for_o sinner_n and_o the_o sinner_n to_o who_o it_o be_v due_a see_v he_o cause_v none_o to_o sin_n he_o predestinate_v most_o just_o both_o punishment_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v most_o just_a for_o sinner_n and_o sinner_n who_o be_v never_o unknown_a unto_o he_o but_o most_o certain_o know_v by_o eternal_a verity_n for_o everlasting_a punishment_n so_o and_o more_o write_v florus_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o prudentius_n be_v in_o the_o abovenamed_a history_n vsser_n cap._n 11_o where_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o show_v that_o when_o aeneas_n who_o have_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o carisiac_a synod_n be_v to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o paris_n prudentius_n be_v call_v unto_o his_o ordination_n do_v excuse_v himself_o by_o letter_n and_o send_v unto_o wenilo_n metropolitan_a of_o senonen_n four_o article_n which_o if_o the_o elect_a bishop_n will_v not_o subscribe_v he_o do_v protest_v that_o he_o will_v no_o way_n consent_n unto_o his_o ordination_n these_o article_n be_v first_o that_o he_o confess_v that_o as_o freewill_n be_v lose_v in_o adam_n by_o merit_n of_o disobedience_n so_o it_o be_v restore_v unto_o we_o by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o free_v now_o in_o hope_n but_o afterward_o real_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n that_o nevertheless_o we_o have_v always_o need_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o almighty_a god_n for_o every_o good_a work_n whether_o for_o think_v or_o beginning_n or_o work_v or_o perseverant_o perfect_v and_o that_o without_o that_o grace_n we_o can_v no_o way_n either_o think_v or_o will_v or_o do_v any_o good_a 2._o that_o he_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o most_o high_a and_o secret_a purpose_n of_o god_n some_o be_v by_o the_o gracious_a mercy_n of_o god_n before_o all_o age_n predestinate_v for_o life_n and_o some_o by_o his_o unsearchable_a righteousness_n be_v predestinate_v for_o pain_n to_o wit_n that_o whether_o in_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v save_v or_o condemn_v he_o have_v predestinate_v that_o which_o he_o foreknow_v he_o will_v do_v in_o judge_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v qui_fw-la fecit_fw-la quae_fw-la futura_fw-la sunt_fw-la esa_fw-la 45._o juxta_fw-la lxx_o interp._n 3._o that_o he_o believe_v and_o confess_v with_o all_o the_o catholic_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v shed_v for_o all_o man_n believe_v in_o he_o through_o the_o world_n and_o not_o for_o
jew_n so_o here_o election_n be_v for_o the_o elect_n who_o obtain_v justification_n by_o faith_n on_o cap._n 15_o at_o these_o word_n whatsoever_o be_v write_v be_v write_v for_o our_o instruction_n ..._o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n join_v himself_o unto_o all_o believer_n and_o will_v show_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o divine_a book_n be_v not_o write_v for_o they_o who_o deed_n and_o work_n be_v there_o report_v for_o they_o be_v in_o rest_n long_o ago_o but_o for_o our_o salvation_n and_o of_o they_o which_o be_v to_o come_v that_o we_o may_v have_v whence_o we_o may_v take_v example_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n and_o whence_o we_o may_v know_v with_o what_o work_v god_n be_v please_v and_o with_o what_o he_o be_v provoke_v to_o punish_v ...._o for_o what_o do_v it_o avail_v to_o abraham_n that_o moses_n have_v write_v he_o be_v obedient_a and_o that_o he_o commend_v he_o to_o have_v please_v god_n but_o he_o say_v whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n prophet_n psalm_n and_o other_o scripture_n be_v write_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o we_o which_o be_v come_v unto_o the_o faith_n may_v thence_o learn_v see_v remigius_n write_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v for_o the_o instruction_n of_o all_o believer_n will_v he_o then_o have_v consent_v unto_o the_o act_n of_o trent_n which_o forbid_v the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n unto_o believer_n on_o 1_o cor._n 1._o at_o these_o word_n that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v before_o he_o he_o say_v no_o flesh_n that_o be_v no_o man_n the_o wise_a and_o mighty_a can_v glory_v because_o they_o be_v not_o call_v by_o he_o for_o their_o wisdom_n and_o riches_n neither_o have_v they_o divine_a wisdom_n or_o spiritual_a riches_n of_o themselves_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o glory_n because_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v of_o favour_n they_o receive_v it_o from_o god_n without_o their_o merit_n and_o they_o can_v glory_v that_o they_o be_v choose_v for_o their_o wisdom_n and_o riches_n ....._o he_o that_o glori_v let_v he_o glory_n in_o the_o lord_n he_o glori_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o in_o himself_o who_o confess_v that_o all_o the_o good_a he_o have_v he_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o god_n without_o his_o own_o merit_n and_o therefore_o seek_v not_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o praise_n but_o his_o glory_n from_o who_o he_o have_v receive_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v on_o gal._n 6._o on_o these_o word_n god_n forbid_v that_o i_o rejoice_v but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v that_o be_v i_o will_v not_o rejoice_v in_o the_o riches_n and_o dignity_n of_o this_o world_n but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n i._n e._n in_o his_o suffering_n which_o be_v do_v on_o the_o cross_n will_v i_o rejoice_v from_o whence_o be_v my_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n or_o i_o will_v rejoice_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v in_o this_o will_v i_o rejoice_v if_o i_o can_v follow_v the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n what_o he_o have_v sustain_v for_o i_o i_o may_v sustain_v the_o like_a for_o his_o name_n hence_o we_o may_v see_v that_o remigius_n do_v not_o rejoice_v in_o the_o paint_a or_o mould_v cross_n but_o in_o christ_n suffering_n for_o our_o redemption_n on_o eph._n 2._o at_o these_o word_n build_v on_o the_o foundation_n he_o say_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o of_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v christ_n because_o they_o be_v ground_v and_o establish_v in_o faith_n of_o he_o as_o he_o himself_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o i_o will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n here_o remigius_n expound_v the_o rock_n to_o signify_v peter_n on_o cap._n 5._o at_o these_o word_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n he_o say_v in_o this_o world_n the_o church_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v glorious_a one_o way_n because_o it_o have_v king_n and_o prince_n subject_a and_o it_o have_v many_o order_n and_o degree_n but_o it_o can_v be_v without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n of_o sin_n because_o it_o have_v many_o penitent_n in_o it_o and_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o and_o there_o be_v not_o a_o man_n upon_o earth_n which_o do_v good_a and_o sin_v not_o wherefore_o it_o be_v better_a that_o we_o refer_v these_o word_n unto_o the_o general_a resurrection_n on_o cap._n 6._o the_o sword_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o it_o be_v call_v a_o sword_n because_o as_o enemy_n be_v put_v to_o flight_n by_o a_o sword_n so_o by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a scripture_n we_o may_v put_v to_o flight_v all_o the_o craft_n and_o device_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o follow_v what_o the_o scripture_n teach_v and_o eschew_v what_o it_o forbid_v and_o not_o only_o may_v we_o overcome_v the_o devil_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n but_o by_o authority_n thereof_o we_o may_v convince_v all_o heretic_n and_o destroy_v all_o their_o error_n reader_n observe_v in_o this_o testimony_n the_o manifold_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o especial_o that_o they_o be_v a_o rule_n wherewith_o all_o error_n may_v be_v destroy_v on_o phil._n 2._o at_o these_o word_n it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o he_o say_v lest_o he_o seem_v to_o exclude_v god_n from_o our_o salvation_n or_o as_o if_o without_o the_o help_n of_o god_n we_o can_v be_v save_v ●e_n subjoin_v for_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o therefore_o every_o good_a which_o we_o have_v as_o well_o the_o good_a will_n as_o the_o good_a operation_n be_v not_o of_o we_o but_o of_o god_n ....._o both_o to_o will_v that_o be_v to_o have_v a_o good_a will_n be_v to_o do_v according_a to_o good_a will_n that_o be_v that_o we_o may_v always_o will_n what_o be_v good_a on_o cap._n 3._o at_o these_o word_n if_o i_o may_v comprehend_v in_o who_o i_o be_o comprehend_v he_o say_v all_o the_o elect_a which_o be_v predestinate_v for_o eternal_a life_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n because_o thereby_o be_v redeem_v not_o only_o those_o who_o be_v save_v after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o who_o be_v purge_v in_o baptism_n but_o all_o the_o godly_a which_o be_v before_o his_o come_n ....._o whosoever_o be_v perfect_a in_o comparison_n of_o other_o let_v we_o think_v so_o understand_v that_o we_o be_v not_o perfect_a for_o whosoever_o be_v perfect_a that_o be_v who_o be_v think_v to_o be_v perfect_a let_v we_o understand_v that_o this_o be_v in_o comparison_n of_o believer_n and_o who_o have_v less_o understanding_n because_o we_o be_v not_o perfect_a in_o respect_n of_o what_o we_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n on_o 1_o tim._n 2._o he_o say_v see_v the_o psalmist_n say_v the_o lord_n do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v and_o the_o apostle_n say_v which_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v why_o be_v not_o all_o man_n save_v to_o which_o i_o say_v because_o it_o be_v true_a what_o the_o psalmist_n say_v for_o he_o have_v say_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v likewise_o he_o will_v save_v all_o man_n which_o be_v save_v and_o which_o by_o his_o mercy_n seek_v to_o be_v save_v for_o the_o apostle_n have_v put_v the_o whole_a for_o a_o part_n as_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o lord_n say_v when_o i_o shall_v be_v exalt_v from_o the_o earth_n i_o will_v draw_v all_o man_n unto_o i_o for_o he_o draw_v not_o all_o man_n nor_o draw_v all_o man_n but_o all_o that_o be_v the_o elect_a out_o of_o all_o sort_n and_o nation_n out_o of_o all_o sex_n and_o condition_n from_o king_n unto_o beggar_n from_o the_o perfect_a unto_o the_o babe_n of_o one_o day_n yet_o none_o can_v be_v save_v but_o who_o god_n will_v because_o he_o show_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v for_o if_o all_o man_n have_v continue_v in_o perdition_n just_o have_v be_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n but_o that_o his_o mercy_n and_o power_n may_v be_v show_v because_o he_o be_v powerful_a to_o save_v all_o man_n in_o those_o which_o do_v perish_v he_o show_v his_o just_a judgement_n and_o his_o mercy_n in_o they_o which_o be_v save_v for_o his_o grace_n preven_v we_o that_o we_o have_v will_n and_o our_o will_n shall_v accord_v with_o his_o will_n and_o then_o he_o will_v give_v we_o ability_n and_o because_o we_o join_v our_o will_n to_o his_o will_n we_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v reward_v and_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v all_o to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o his_o grace_n whatsoever_o good_a we_o do_v he_o say_v then_o which_o will_v have_v
all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v understand_v thou_o all_o which_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o trinity_n which_o be_v the_o high_a and_o substantial_a truth_n on_o cap._n 3._o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v call_v both_o the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v but_o one_o thing_n for_o the_o firmness_n of_o say_v and_o because_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v by_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o divine_a miracle_n in_o this_o observe_v that_o the_o faith_n or_o truth_n depend_v not_o on_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o church_n be_v a_o ground_n or_o pillar_n because_o it_o have_v firm_a faith_n and_o be_v establish_v by_o divine_a doctrine_n on_o 2_o tim._n 1._o at_o these_o word_n i_o thank_v my_o god_n who_o i_o do_v serve_v from_o my_o forefather_n he_o say_v this_o he_o say_v that_o he_o may_v show_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o be_v before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v the_o same_o faith_n which_o he_o and_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v and_o do_v descend_v from_o those_o father_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o they_o unto_o we_o as_o also_o it_o descend_v from_o we_o unto_o they_o which_o shall_v come_v after_o we_o in_o this_o one_o testimony_n many_o thing_n may_v be_v observe_v against_o the_o present_a tenet_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n if_o i_o will_v stay_v but_o one_o thing_n though_o but_o a_o negative_a i_o can_v omit_v that_o in_o all_o these_o descending_n be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o dependence_n on_o the_o roman_a bishop_n or_o faith_n so_o that_o if_o we_o have_v the_o faith_n which_o the_o forefather_n and_o apostle_n have_v and_o they_o which_o have_v the_o same_o from_o they_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o have_v the_o same_o or_o not_o have_v it_o we_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n on_o cap._n 2._o at_o these_o word_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o this_o be_v the_o impression_n of_o the_o seal_n he_o know_v that_o be_v the_o lord_n have_v choose_v they_o which_o belong_v unto_o his_o inheritance_n and_o this_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o faith_n because_o when_o other_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n they_o which_o be_v elect_a can_v in_o no_o way_n be_v seduce_v many_o such_o other_o testimony_n may_v be_v observe_v in_o that_o exegesis_n which_o villapand_n call_v a_o rich_a treasure_n a_o rich_a treasure_n it_o be_v which_o so_o clear_o show_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o have_v forsake_v that_o faith_n in_o so_o many_o particular_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o therefore_o bellarmin_n be_v more_o wary_a than_o his_o brother_n and_o though_o he_o do_v bring_v that_o testimony_n concern_v the_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n yet_o no_o where_n else_o will_v name_v that_o book_n nor_o the_o author_n of_o it_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr scriptoribus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la although_o he_o forget_v not_o other_o of_o less_o note_n 18._o haymo_n be_v bishop_n of_o halberstad_n about_o this_o time_n but_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v young_a than_o remigius_n he_o write_v sundry_a volume_n especial_o two_o book_n of_o homily_n in_o the_o first_o call_v pars_fw-la hyemalis_fw-la he_o have_v these_o sentence_n in_o feria_n 4._o quatuor_fw-la tempor_fw-la at_o these_o word_n ave_fw-la gratta_fw-it plena_fw-la he_o say_v she_o be_v well_o say_v to_o be_v full_a of_o grace_n because_o she_o have_v attain_v what_o no_v other_o woman_n have_v attain_v to_o wit_n she_o do_v conceive_v and_o bear_v the_o author_n of_o grace_n behold_v he_o expound_v these_o word_n otherwise_o then_o the_o papist_n do_v now_o and_o here_o his_o word_n be_v gratiam_fw-la quam_fw-la nulla_fw-la alia_fw-la meruer_n at_o assequitur_fw-la and_o i_o have_v translate_v the_o word_n meruer_n at_o after_o this_o manner_n because_o as_o i_o have_v mark_v before_o the_o ancient_n do_v use_v it_o in_o this_o signification_n and_o as_o follow_v haymo_n be_v far_o from_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n merit_n ibid._n at_o the_o word_n that_o holy_a thing_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o he_o say_v for_o distinction_n of_o our_o holiness_n jesus_n be_v affirm_v singular_o to_o be_v bear_v holy_a for_o although_o we_o be_v make_v holy_a yet_o we_o be_v not_o bear_v holy_a because_o we_o be_v bind_v with_o the_o condition_n of_o corruptible_a nature_n that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o may_v with_o the_o prophet_n sigh_n and_o say_v behold_v i_o be_v conceive_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n have_v my_o mother_n bring_v i_o forth_o but_o he_o only_o be_v true_o holy_a which_o that_o he_o may_v overcome_v the_o condition_n of_o corruptible_a nature_n be_v not_o conceive_v by_o the_o commixtion_n of_o carnal_a copulation_n the_o papist_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v free_a of_o original_a sin_n to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o plausible_o commend_v she_o to_o be_v worship_v as_o the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n but_o behold_v here_o haymo_n say_v more_o than_o remigius_n say_v for_o he_o say_v not_o only_o that_o it_o be_v the_o singular_a privilege_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v bear_v holy_a but_o more_o he_o say_v that_o he_o may_v overcome_v the_o condition_n of_o corruptible_a nature_n he_o be_v not_o conceive_v by_o commixtion_n certain_o the_o condition_n which_o he_o overcome_v be_v singular_o the_o condition_n of_o mary_n corruptible_a nature_n see_v she_o be_v conceive_v by_o commixtion_n dominic_n 4._o post_v epiphan_n there_o be_v a_o great_a storm_n on_o the_o sea_n because_o the_o persecution_n of_o pagan_n the_o devil_n stir_v they_o up_o do_v arise_v against_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o ship_n be_v cover_v with_o the_o wave_n that_o be_v the_o persecution_n wax_v the_o church_n do_v scarce_o lurk_v in_o a_o few_o believer_n neither_o dare_v any_o man_n confess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n public_o who_o be_v not_o prepare_v to_o die_v present_o for_o christ_n which_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o dioclesian_n and_o other_o the_o history_n do_v declare_v this_o testimony_n confute_v the_o papist_n hold_v that_o the_o church_n do_v flourish_v at_o all_o time_n and_o witness_v with_o we_o that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v force_v to_o lurk_v at_o some_o time_n in_o dominic_n in_o septuage_n on_o the_o parable_n matth._n 20._o he_o say_v this_o vine-yard_n be_v the_o holy_a church_n which_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o end_n thereof_o so_o many_o godly_a as_o it_o bring_v forth_o it_o beget_v so_o many_o branch_n this_o vine-yard_n be_v plant_v among_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o after_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o be_v enlarge_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o same_o homily_n he_o say_v because_o eternal_a life_n be_v render_v to_o no_o man_n by_o way_n of_o debt_n but_o be_v give_v through_o the_o gracious_a mercy_n of_o god_n therefore_o ...._o and_o near_o the_o end_n he_o say_v see_v it_o be_v give_v to_o none_o by_o debt_n but_o only_o of_o gracious_a mercy_n unto_o who_o he_o will_v none_o can_v grumble_v at_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n because_o he_o show_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v he_o show_v mercy_n of_o his_o own_o goodness_n and_o he_o harden_v without_o iniquity_n because_o although_o his_o judgement_n be_v sometime_o hide_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o unjust_a in_o feria_n 4_o post_n judica_fw-la on_o joh._n 10_o he_o say_v on_o these_o word_n and_o i_o give_v unto_o they_o eternal_a life_n these_o be_v the_o pasture_n which_o he_o do_v before_o promise_v unto_o his_o sheep_n wherein_o no_o herb_n wither_v but_o all_o be_v green_a all_o wax_v all_o abide_v whole_a and_o whatsoever_o be_v once_o take_v in_o be_v possess_v for_o ever_o and_o they_o shall_v not_o perish_v for_o ever_o here_o understand_v as_o you_o shall_v perish_v which_o be_v not_o of_o my_o sheep_n and_o none_o shall_v pluck_v they_o out_o of_o my_o hand_n that_o be_v from_o my_o power_n here_o he_o affirm_v the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o elect_n and_o the_o damnation_n of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o elect_v in_o feria_n 6_o post_n judica_fw-la on_o joh._n 6._o on_o these_o word_n my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o he_o say_v see_v all_o man_n do_v desire_n by_o meat_n and_o drink_n that_o they_o may_v not_o hunger_n nor_o thirst_n nothing_o can_v do_v this_o true_o but_o this_o meat_n and_o drink_n which_o make_v they_o who_o receive_v it_o to_o be_v immortal_a and_o incorruptible_a and_o that_o be_v the_o society_n of_o the_o godly_a wherein_o shall_v be_v full_a and_o perfect_a peace_n and_o unity_n ....._o then_o he_o expound_v how_o this_o may_v be_v which_o he_o have_v say_v
sin_n here_o he_o expound_v not_o that_o text_n as_o the_o rhemist_n and_o other_o late_a papist_n do_v of_o a_o create_a raphiel_n or_o other_o angel_n and_o out_o of_o it_o they_o will_v prove_v the_o lawfullness_n of_o pray_v to_o angel_n on_o chap._n 9_o at_o the_o word_n and_o there_o arise_v a_o smoke_n out_o of_o the_o pit_n he_o say_v that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o wicked_a heretic_n be_v make_v manifest_a which_o be_v well_o compare_v unto_o smoke_n because_o it_o want_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n and_o what_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v light_a unto_o the_o godly_a that_o pour_v blindness_n upon_o heretic_n and_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o obscure_v the_o light_n of_o faith_n unto_o other_o ....._o and_o there_o come_v locust_n upon_o the_o earth_n to_o wit_n disciple_n of_o error_n come_v to_o deceive_v the_o earthly_a heart_n of_o man_n for_o locust_n neither_o walk_v forward_o as_o some_o wight_n neither_o do_v they_o flee_v as_o fowl_n because_o the_o disciple_n of_o heretic_n and_o heretic_n themselves_o neither_o have_v upright_a faith_n that_o they_o may_v flee_v and_o seek_v heavenly_a thing_n with_o the_o godly_a of_o who_o esaias_n say_v who_o be_v these_o which_o flee_v as_o cloud_n nor_o have_v forward_o or_o right_o walk_v of_o work_n that_o they_o can_v say_v with_o the_o psalmist_n he_o set_v my_o foot_n upon_o a_o rock_n and_o direct_v my_o step_n the_o locust_n do_v leap_v and_o eat_v every_o green_a thing_n because_o they_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o pride_n and_o kill_v so_o many_o soul_n as_o they_o can_v which_o have_v the_o greenness_n of_o faith_n ....._o and_o it_o be_v command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o hurt_v the_o grass_n ...._o here_o the_o grass_n be_v take_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n for_o it_o signify_v suck_v once_o which_o can_v eat_v solid_a meat_n but_o delight_n in_o the_o superfice_n of_o the_o letter_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v i_o can_v not_o speak_v unto_o you_o as_o spiritual_a man_n but_o as_o carnal_a ..._o and_o every_o green_a thing_n signify_v they_o who_o have_v make_v better_a progress_n who_o can_v now_o understand_v what_o john_n say_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o tree_n be_v they_o who_o be_v perfect_a and_o strong_a in_o the_o faith_n because_o such_o can_v endure_v the_o wind_n of_o temptation_n ...._o but_o only_o the_o man_n which_o have_v not_o the_o sign_n of_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n understand_v you_o worthy_o because_o here_o be_v exclude_v not_o only_o those_o which_o be_v without_o the_o church_n that_o be_v pagan_n and_o jew_n but_o also_o false_a christian_n who_o have_v the_o sign_n in_o their_o body_n that_o be_v be_v baptize_v and_o be_v within_o the_o church_n but_o with_o their_o work_n do_v defile_v the_o faith_n which_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v and_o therefore_o be_v hurt_v ....._o see_v many_o do_v confess_v christ_n in_o word_n only_o but_o have_v a_o form_n of_o godliness_n deny_v the_o power_n thereof_o they_o confess_v they_o know_v god_n but_o deny_v he_o by_o their_o work_n the_o reader_n may_v judge_v whether_o in_o all_o this_o testimony_n he_o describe_v not_o the_o jesuit_n as_o if_o he_o have_v see_v or_o have_v experience_n of_o they_o at_o least_o his_o word_n be_v contrary_a unto_o they_o for_o they_o especial_o do_v speak_v against_o the_o scripture_n and_o cease_v not_o to_o obscure_v they_o and_o so_o forth_o but_o especial_o mark_v how_o haymo_n expound_v the_o sign_n of_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n whereas_o the_o rhemist_n in_o their_o annotation_n and_o other_o of_o that_o stamp_n do_v expound_v it_o of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o lib._n 6._o on_o chap._n 19_o at_o the_o word_n i_o fall_v at_o his_o foot_n to_o worship_v ...._o he_o say_v because_o john_n see_v he_o great_a than_o himself_o he_o fall_v down_o will_v have_v worship_v he_o for_o here_o both_o the_o angel_n and_o john_n take_v their_o own_o person_n for_o whereas_o the_o angel_n have_v say_v i_o be_o alpha_fw-la and_o omega_fw-la the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o he_o show_v in_o this_o place_n that_o he_o be_v send_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n when_o consider_v his_o own_o person_n he_o forbid_v that_o john_n do_v not_o worship_v he_o ...._o he_o say_v see_v that_o be_v beware_v that_o thou_o do_v it_o not_o for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow-servant_n for_o we_o both_o thou_o and_o i_o have_v one_o lord_n and_o in_o nothing_o be_o i_o prefer_v above_o thou_o but_o in_o doctrine_n which_o i_o be_o send_v to_o teach_v thou_o neither_o be_o i_o thy_o companion_n only_o but_o also_o of_o thy_o brethren_n to_o wit_n i_o profess_v myself_o the_o coequal_a of_o all_o believe_a man_n which_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n that_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n ...._o worship_n god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v do_v not_o worship_v i_o who_o speak_v these_o word_n unto_o thou_o but_o he_o in_o who_o person_n i_o appear_v how_o far_o differ_v haymo_n here_o from_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o yet_o the_o rhemist_n on_o that_o text_n say_v the_o protestant_n abuse_v this_o place_n and_o the_o example_n of_o the_o angel_n forbid_v john_n to_o adore_v he_o ....._o but_o in_o truth_n it_o make_v for_o no_o such_o purpose_n but_o only_o warn_v we_o that_o divine_a honour_n and_o adoration_n due_a unto_o god_n alone_o may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o angel_n but_o we_o see_v that_o haymo_n know_v not_o any_o such_o distinction_n and_o he_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o no_o believer_n shall_v worship_v a_o angel_n in_o any_o way_n in_o lib._n 7._o on_o the_o same_o chap._n he_o say_v if_o the_o first_o man_n have_v not_o sin_v he_o have_v continue_v immortal_a but_o because_o he_o contemn_v god_n command_n immediate_o he_o incur_v god_n wrath_n and_o die_v a_o little_a after_o haymo_n have_v many_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n sun_n in_o scripture_n but_o he_o show_v not_o that_o it_o signify_v the_o pope_n at_o the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o book_n he_o say_v observe_v this_o book_n begin_v with_o grace_n and_o end_v in_o grace_n because_o both_o by_o preven_a grace_n be_v we_o save_v and_o by_o subsequent_a grace_n be_v we_o justify_v wherefore_o paul_n also_o order_v his_o epistle_n unto_o the_o church_n in_o this_o manner_n that_o he_o begin_v with_o grace_n and_o close_v with_o grace_n he_o have_v many_o such_o passage_n but_o these_o may_v serve_v for_o a_o taste_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o time_n in_o the_o church_n 19_o lupus_n be_v abbot_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o ferraria_n by_o the_o water_n lupa_n run_v into_o seine_n at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o write_v several_a epistle_n unto_o king_n lewis_n to_o hincmar_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v print_v at_o paris_n an._n 1588._o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n he_o say_v now_o they_o be_v account_v troublesome_a who_o be_v desirous_a to_o learn_v and_o as_o if_o they_o be_v set_v in_o a_o high_a place_n the_o unlearned_a gaze_n on_o they_o continual_o and_o if_o they_o can_v espy_v any_o fault_n in_o they_o it_o be_v not_o call_v human_a frailty_n but_o it_o be_v impute_v unto_o the_o quality_n of_o learning_n in_o the_o 2_o and_o 4_o epistle_n he_o comfort_v his_o master_n einhard_n after_o the_o death_n of_o his_o wife_n he_o speak_v honourable_o of_o marriage_n and_o comfortable_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o godly_a after_o this_o life_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o purgatory_n or_o mass_n for_o the_o defunct_a and_o he_o interlace_v these_o sentence_n the_o word_n of_o god_n inlightn_v the_o most_o obscure_a darkness_n of_o this_o life_n as_o it_o be_v say_v thy_o word_n be_v a_o lantern_n unto_o my_o foot_n the_o way_n of_o man_n be_v not_o in_o his_o own_o power_n but_o the_o footstep_n of_o man_n be_v direct_v by_o god_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o man_n freewill_n have_v altogether_o need_v of_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n the_o more_o true_o we_o be_v sensible_a of_o our_o frailty_n the_o more_o speedy_o shall_v we_o run_v unto_o the_o help_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o it_o be_v sweet_o say_v where_o man_n power_n fail_v the_o help_n of_o god_n be_v present_a neither_o be_v this_o a_o long_a travel_n if_o we_o endeavour_v for_o he_o who_o call_v say_v come_v unto_o i_o who_o be_v weary_a he_o inform_v they_o which_o come_v and_o without_o all_o doubt_n he_o crow_v they_o continue_v in_o he_o say_v with_o the_o famous_a and_o most_o sweet_a augustine_n give_v i_o lord_n what_o thou_o bid_v do_v and_o bid_v do_v what_o thou_o will_v see_v god_n both_o prevenes_n and_o follow_v we_o that_o we_o may_v will_n or_o do_v any_o good_a in_o the_o 112_o epistle_n let_v the_o worthiness_n
of_o the_o element_n and_o blow_v on_o they_o and_o cross_v they_o i_o know_v not_o how_o often_o the_o thwart_a and_o lift_v up_o of_o their_o arm_n the_o join_v and_o unjoin_v of_o the_o priest_n thumb_n and_o fore-finger_n with_o such_o other_o rite_n which_o have_v no_o such_o foundation_n in_o nor_o relation_n unto_o christ_n institution_n nor_o his_o apostle_n doctrine_n or_o practice_n and_o do_v smell_v of_o charm_v or_o heathenism_n more_o than_o of_o true_a piety_n and_o the_o rather_o be_v the_o word_n to_o be_v forsake_v because_o their_o priest_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v qui_fw-la creavit_fw-la i_o dedit_fw-la mihi_fw-la creare_fw-la se_fw-la qui_fw-la creavit_fw-la i_o sine_fw-la i_o creature_n à_fw-la i_o 25._o raban_n speak_v so_o not_o that_o he_o mean_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n although_o io._n eckius_fw-la in_o tom_n figurative_o the_o bread_n be_v he_o body_n figurative_o 4._o homil_n 31._o do_v cite_v his_o word_n unto_o that_o purpose_n for_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o then_o hatch_v as_o i_o shall_v show_v god_n willing_a and_o raban_n be_v reckon_v among_o heretic_n for_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n as_o be_v touch_v before_o but_o because_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o visible_a figure_n and_o resemblance_n and_o seal_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o because_o with_o the_o sign_n the_o believer_n receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n raban_n word_n which_o i_o have_v relate_v in_o the_o former_a section_n do_v clear_o show_v his_o mind_n in_o these_o word_n and_o so_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o many_o other_o writing_n in_o this_o manner_n although_o their_o word_n have_v be_v wrest_v to_o another_o sense_n 26._o observe_v he_o say_v prayer_n unto_o god_n but_o in_o all_o this_o institution_n be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o pray_v unto_o the_o bread_n i_o know_v they_o worship_v the_o bread_n be_v not_o worship_v do_v quote_v the_o ancient_n for_o adore_v the_o bread_n and_o especial_o they_o allege_v theodoret._n dial_n 2._o but_o by_o one_o we_o may_v understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o all_o other_o his_o word_n be_v these_o the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o sanctification_n do_v not_o depart_v from_o their_o nature_n for_o they_o remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n figure_n and_o form_n and_o they_o may_v be_v both_o touch_v and_o see_v as_o they_o be_v before_o but_o they_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v make_v and_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v and_o they_o be_v adore_v as_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v compare_v therefore_o the_o image_n with_o the_o exemplar_n or_o pattern_n for_o the_o figure_n shall_v be_v like_o the_o truth_n in_o these_o word_n theodoret._n deni_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o bodily_a presence_n and_o he_o call_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n sign_v mystical_a the_o image_n of_o the_o exemplar_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o thereby_o we_o may_v easy_o understand_v what_o kind_n of_o adore_v or_o reverence_n he_o will_v have_v give_v unto_o the_o sign_n and_o not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v adore_v as_o christ_n himself_o and_o to_o show_v the_o impudence_n of_o the_o romanist_n i_o add_v another_o testimony_n which_o they_o do_v object_n out_o of_o august_n in_o ps_n 98._o saying_n no_o man_n eat_v it_o before_o he_o adore_v it_o they_o object_v these_o word_n as_o if_o augustine_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o bread_n but_o his_o word_n be_v of_o the_o earth_n he_o christ_n take_v earth_n because_o flesh_n be_v of_o the_o earth_n and_o of_o the_o flesh_n of_o mary_n he_o take_v flesh_n because_o he_o walk_v here_o in_o the_o same_o flesh_n and_o do_v give_v we_o the_o same_o flesh_n unto_o salvation_n and_o no_o man_n eat_v that_o flesh_n except_o he_o first_o adore_v it_o etc._n etc._n here_o augustine_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o of_o the_o flesh_n which_o christ_n take_v of_o the_o flesh_n of_o mary_n and_o who_o deni_v that_o flesh_n shall_v be_v adore_v some_o word_n after_o these_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o they_o be_v clear_a for_o he_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n as_o if_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v understand_v you_o spiritual_o what_o i_o have_v speak_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n which_o you_o see_v nor_o drink_v this_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v shed_v who_o shall_v crucify_v i_o i_o have_v commend_v unto_o you_o a_o certain_a sacrament_n which_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v shall_v quicken_v you_o and_o although_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o same_o be_v celebrate_v visible_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v invisible_o so_o august_n nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o plain_o and_o direct_o against_o the_o gross_a and_o carnal_a manner_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n 27._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o prayer_n and_o who_o have_v ordain_v it_o to_o be_v sing_v noster_fw-la rite_n at_o say_v pater_fw-la noster_fw-la i_o know_v not_o but_o io._n beleth_n cap._n 47._o testify_v that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o people_n do_v stand_v when_o this_o prayer_n be_v say_v if_o it_o be_v a_o feast-day_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o feast_n the_o people_n be_v prostrate_a and_o the_o priest_n say_v it_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n except_o these_o word_n but_o deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a which_o the_o people_n do_v answer_v 28._o as_o christ_n do_v ordain_v that_o all_o believer_n shall_v eat_v in_o remembrance_n of_o of_o communicate_v now_o leave_v of_o he_o so_o in_o ancient_a time_n be_v a_o order_n that_o all_o shall_v communicate_v who_o will_v not_o be_v excommunicate_a gratian._n the_o consecr_n do_v 2._o cap._n peracta_fw-la &_o comperimus_fw-la where_o be_v then_o the_o private_a mass_n wherein_o the_o priest_n alone_o consume_v the_o sacrament_n this_o order_n of_o communicate_v have_v cease_v through_o the_o sloth_n of_o priest_n and_o people_n say_v cochlaeus_fw-la de_fw-fr sacrif_n missae_fw-la and_o harding_n answer_n to_o the_o first_o article_n of_o bishop_n juel_n challenge_n and_o for_o remedy_n it_o be_v provide_v that_o two_o deacon_n shall_v communicate_v with_o the_o priest_n gratian._n the_o consecr_n do_v 1._o cap._n hoc_fw-la quoque_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la and_o pope_n sergius_n the_o ii_o ordain_v mystery_n and_o the_o rite_n be_v turn_v to_o a_o mystery_n that_o the_o bread_n shall_v be_v break_v into_o three_o part_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o communicant_n which_o rite_n of_o break_v remain_v yet_o although_o the_o priest_n be_v alone_o but_o they_o have_v draw_v it_o to_o signify_v a_o mystery_n lombard_n lib._n 4._o do_v 12._o f._n say_v the_o part_n which_o be_v offer_v and_o cast_v into_o the_o cup_n signify_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o rise_v again_o the_o part_n which_o be_v eat_v signify_v he_o walk_v on_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o three_o part_n lie_v on_o the_o altar_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o mass_n signify_v the_o body_n lie_v in_o the_o grave_n for_o until_o the_o end_n of_o this_o world_n the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v continue_v in_o the_o grave_n the_o author_n of_o specul_n curator_n say_v two_o part_n be_v reserve_v and_o the_o three_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o cup_n to_o signify_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v profitable_a for_o three_o thing_n unto_o just_a man_n for_o increase_v of_o grace_n unto_o sinner_n for_o take_v away_o their_o sin_n and_o unto_o those_o in_o purgatory_n for_o take_v away_o their_o punishment_n so_o uncertain_a be_v they_o in_o their_o error_n and_o in_o that_o direction_n of_o the_o curate_n it_o be_v special_o provide_v that_o only_o the_o priest_n shall_v eat_v that_o part_n which_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o cup._n so_o that_o now_o the_o communion_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n turn_v into_o a_o theatrical_a eat_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o priest_n alone_o cassander_n can_v wonder_v enough_o how_o they_o have_v depart_v so_o far_o from_o the_o institution_n and_o how_o they_o dare_v so_o clear_o violate_v the_o act_n of_o counsel_n etc._n etc._n consult_v art_n 24._o 29._o christ_n do_v not_o put_v the_o sacrament_n into_o his_o apostle_n mouth_n but_o every_o one_o receive_v the_o bread_n with_o his_o hand_n alter_v receive_v be_v alter_v and_o such_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n until_o the_o six_o synod_n say_v jesuit_n salmeron_n on_o 1_o cor._n 11._o disp_n 19_o but_o this_o be_v alter_v when_o the_o roman_a church_n ordain_v that_o for_o reverence_n sake_n people_n shall_v not_o touch_v it_o with_o their_o hand_n but_o so_o oft_o as_o they_o communicate_v the_o priest_n shall_v put_v the_o bread_n into_o their_o mouth_n
hence_o be_v arisen_a another_o novelty_n that_o whereas_o the_o bread_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v break_v and_o distribute_v out_o of_o the_o same_o loaf_n now_o they_o break_v not_o the_o bread_n they_o say_v for_o reverence_n as_o if_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n have_v not_o be_v reverend_a or_o believer_n now_o can_v be_v reverend_a and_o therefore_o lest_o wafer_n wafer_n people_n do_v break_v christ_n body_n with_o their_o tooth_n they_o do_v provide_v wafer_n which_o may_v melt_v away_o in_o the_o mouth_n cassander_n in_o liturg._n say_v this_o be_v religion_n many_o way_n despise_v 30._o he_o mention_v the_o receive_n of_o bread_n only_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o distribution_n of_o the_o cup_n also_o be_v ordain_v by_o use_n drink_v be_v out_o of_o use_n christ_n and_o it_o continue_v in_o use_n for_o raban_n in_o the_o same_o book_n chap._n 31._o say_v the_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n take_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o believer_n now_o this_o custom_n be_v not_o forbid_v until_o the_o council_n at_o constance_n an._n 1415_o cassand_n consul_n art_n 22_o and_o again_o it_o be_v permit_v unto_o the_o bohemian_o an._n 1438._o by_o the_o council_n at_o basil_n yea_o pope_n gelasius_n the_o i_o make_v a_o decree_n that_o who_o will_v not_o communicate_v in_o both_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v from_o both_o this_o decree_n stand_v in_o force_n about_o the_o year_n 1200_o and_o be_v register_v by_o gratian._n the_o consecr_n cap._n 2._o comperimus_fw-la his_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o division_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o mystery_n can_v be_v without_o great_a sacrilege_n upon_o these_o word_n the_o gloss_n say_v this_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o species_n ...._o therefore_o it_o be_v take_v under_o both_o kind_n as_o a_o pupil_n must_v approve_v all_o which_o a_o tutor_n do_v or_o refuse_v all_o yet_o say_v he_o a_o sick_a man_n who_o may_v not_o drink_v wine_n or_o any_o other_o in_o necessity_n may_v take_v the_o body_n without_o wine_n when_o and_o by_o who_o come_v this_o alteration_n jesuit_n coster_n in_o enchir._n tracta_fw-la de_fw-fr commun_fw-fr sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la spe_fw-la say_v not_o by_o commandment_n of_o bishop_n but_o it_o creep_v in_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o people_n the_o bishop_n wink_v at_o it_o it_o be_v likely_a the_o communion_n of_o bread_n only_o come_v by_o practice_n of_o priest_n after_o that_o thomas_n aquin._n have_v devise_v concomitancy_n lest_o any_o thing_n may_v seem_v superfluous_a 31._o this_o be_v the_o second_o time_n that_o kiss_n kiss_n the_o priest_n salute_v the_o people_n biel_n in_o expos_n miss_n lect_v 16._o note_v three_o salutation_n with_o the_o particular_a reason_n as_o they_o may_v be_v io._n bele_v cap._n 48._o say_v the_o priest_n take_v this_o kiss_n from_o the_o eucharist_n or_o as_o some_o think_v from_o the_o altar_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o deacon_n or_o sub-deacon_n that_o by_o they_o it_o may_v go_v unto_o other_o but_o say_v he_o with_o this_o caution_n that_o man_n give_v it_o not_o unto_o woman_n lest_o some_o wantonness_n or_o carnality_n creep_v into_o the_o thought_n the_o rhemist_n will_v derive_v this_o custom_n of_o the_o mass_n from_o rom._n 16._o 16_o but_o paul_n do_v not_o kiss_v the_o bread_n nor_o the_o altar_n nor_o do_v he_o command_v it_o as_o a_o part_n or_o pendicle_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o it_o be_v a_o fashion_n among_o we_o for_o man_n meet_v or_o part_v with_o friend_n to_o shake_v hand_n so_o it_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o some_o other_o nation_n as_o appear_v by_o many_o place_n in_o both_o testament_n for_o man_n to_o kiss_v man_n which_o custom_n christian_n do_v also_o observe_v and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n do_v moderate_v that_o custom_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o holiness_n and_o as_o that_o secular_a custom_n do_v wear_v out_o of_o use_n so_o it_o cease_v also_o in_o the_o church_n 32._o beleth_n have_v the_o word_n lamb_n of_o god_n who_o take_v away_o the_o etc._n a_o change_n in_o the_o word_n agnus_n etc._n etc._n sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o not_o the_o word_n follow_v but_o also_o faith_n these_o be_v say_v thrice_o to_o wit_n twice_o with_o have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o once_o with_o give_v we_o peace_n but_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o when_o it_o be_v a_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a but_o only_o with_o give_v they_o rest_n raban_n and_o other_o before_o he_o know_v not_o this_o distinction_n 33._o the_o lawful_a communicate_v the_o use_n of_o communicate_v use_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o believe_a receiver_n but_o afterward_o it_o be_v provide_v that_o if_o any_o theft_n be_v commit_v in_o a_o monastery_n and_o the_o monk_n be_v suspect_v then_o the_o abbot_n shall_v say_v a_o mass_n and_o all_o the_o monk_n shall_v communicate_v and_o thereby_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v innocent_a gratian._n cause_n 2._o qu._n 5._o cap._n saepe_fw-la contingit_fw-la show_v that_o pope_n nicolaus_n ordain_v these_o word_n to_o be_v say_v unto_o each_o one_o of_o they_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v unto_o thy_o trial_n this_o decree_n be_v abrogate_v by_o contrary_a decree_n of_o pope_n because_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o who_o be_v suspect_v of_o a_o crime_n tho._n aquin._n pag._n 3._o qu._n 80._o be_v 6_o ad_fw-la 3._o nevertheless_o it_o be_v turn_v to_o worse_a for_o in_o all_o their_o treason_n and_o plot_n either_o against_o nation_n or_o church_n they_o make_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o their_o bloody_a intention_n 34._o beleth_n say_v this_o be_v the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o mass_n call_v the_o thanksgiving_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o communion_n which_o be_v also_o call_v completio_n but_o i_o find_v no_o word_n of_o thanksgiving_n here_o so_o thankfulness_n be_v wear_v out_o of_o use_n 35._o some_o say_v the_o blessing_n be_v ordain_v by_o pope_n leo_n the_o i_o est_fw-la item_fw-la missa_fw-la est_fw-la but_o it_o be_v more_o ancient_a to_o bless_v the_o people_n at_o their_o dismission_n 36._o poly._n virgil._n de_fw-fr invent_v rer_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 11._o say_v the_o say_n of_o item_fw-la missa_fw-la est_fw-la be_v from_o a_o custom_n remainder_n what_o be_v do_v with_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o isis_n 37._o he_o have_v no_o mention_n of_o what_o be_v do_v with_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o element_n bellarm._n de_fw-fr euchar._n lib._n 4._o cap_n 4._o show_v out_o of_o justine_n that_o the_o deacon_n be_v wont_a to_o carry_v the_o eucharist_n unto_o the_o sick_a or_o they_o who_o can_v not_o come_v to_o the_o public_a meeting_n and_o cap._n 5._o the_o relic_n be_v give_v unto_o child_n to_o be_v eat_v by_o they_o because_o they_o think_v not_o the_o element_n to_o be_v holy_a but_o in_o use_n but_o now_o they_o keep_v their_o osty_a for_o adoration_n and_o pompous_a procession_n which_o custom_n be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o institution_n as_o cassander_n prove_v by_o many_o testimony_n in_o liturgic_n cap._n 30._o 11._o this_o add_v many_o rite_n be_v add_v be_v the_o form_n of_o gregory_n mass_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o raban_n far_o different_a from_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o since_o that_o time_n it_o be_v as_o far_o change_v even_o so_o far_o that_o if_o raban_n be_v alive_a and_o can_v say_v mass_n no_o better_o he_o will_v be_v call_v a_o ignorant_a curate_n it_o have_v indeed_o more_o show_v and_o pomp_n now_o then_o before_o but_o as_o a_o paint_a image_n have_v more_o accoutrement_n than_o the_o man_n have_v yet_o it_o have_v no_o life_n in_o it_o so_o the_o addition_n and_o change_n make_v it_o more_o glorious_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n but_o the_o liveliness_n and_o spirituality_n of_o it_o be_v go_v for_o at_o first_o be_v but_o one_o sort_n of_o celebrate_v but_o now_o they_o have_v a_o public_a form_n and_o a_o private_a and_o a_o solitary_a one_o for_o sunday_n another_o for_o week_n day_n another_o for_o feast_n day_n another_o for_o fast_n etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o people_n understand_v all_o and_o have_v their_o part_n in_o pray_v and_o sing_v but_o now_o the_o priest_n do_v all_o in_o a_o unknown_a language_n except_o that_o a_o deacon_n or_o clark_n say_v some_o few_o word_n 3._o as_o some_o exhortation_n and_o prayer_n be_v now_o put_v away_o whereof_o i_o have_v now_o note_v some_o so_o many_o other_o thing_n be_v add_v as_o first_o the_o introitus_fw-la must_v be_v sing_v twice_o on_o some_o day_n and_o thrice_o on_o other_o day_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o tractus_n which_o must_v be_v sing_v with_o long_a or_o slow_a pronunciation_n 3._o there_o be_v
respicere_fw-la digneris_fw-la etc._n etc._n 3._o when_o the_o priest_n take_v the_o hosty_a into_o his_o hand_n before_o he_o communicate_v he_o be_v order_v to_o pray_v in_o this_o manner_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la tui_fw-la domine_fw-la jesu_fw-la christ_n sacramentum_fw-la quod_fw-la licet_fw-la indignus_fw-la accipio_fw-la not_o sit_v mihi_fw-la judicio_fw-la &_o condemnationi_fw-la sed_fw-la tua_fw-la prosit_fw-la pielate_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la &_o animae_fw-la saluti_fw-la 4._o when_o he_o take_v the_o cup_n he_o be_v order_v to_o say_v gratias_fw-la tibi_fw-la ago_o domine_fw-la sancte_fw-la pater_fw-la omnipotens_fw-la ...._o &_o precor_fw-la ut_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la salutis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la quod_fw-la sumpsi_fw-la indignus_fw-la peccator_fw-la non_fw-la veniat_fw-la mihi_fw-la ad_fw-la judicium_fw-la neque_fw-la ad_fw-la condemnationem_fw-la whence_o we_o see_v that_o both_o before_o the_o consecration_n as_o they_o speak_v and_o after_o the_o consecration_n that_o which_o be_v receive_v be_v call_v bread_n and_o the_o cup_n out_o of_o what_o the_o people_n offer_v from_o what_o god_n have_v give_v they_o and_o it_o be_v pray_v that_o god_n will_v look_v gracious_o on_o these_o thing_n even_o on_o that_o bread_n and_o cup_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o look_v on_o the_o offering_n of_o abel_n and_o that_o bread_n and_o cup_n be_v two_o several_a time_n call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o salvation_n wherefore_o certain_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n the_o bread_n be_v still_o bread_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o it_o be_v not_o transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n body_n but_o say_v the_o jesuit_n io._n hart_n against_o io._n reinolds_n yea_o the_o bread_n and_o cup_n do_v tropologicè_fw-la signify_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n for_o we_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v a_o trope_n or_o figure_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o they_o deny_v and_o why_o shall_v that_o be_v deny_v more_o than_o to_o be_v affirm_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o the_o rather_o that_o in_o the_o same_o canon_n and_o in_o the_o prayer_n after_o consecration_n the_o bread_n and_o cup_n be_v express_o call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o salvation_n a_o sacrament_n be_v not_o the_o thing_n signify_v but_o a_o sign_n and_o seal_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n there_o be_v no_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n three_o concern_v the_o people_n 3._o the_o deny_v of_o the_o wine_n unto_o the_o people_n communicant_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o canon_n be_v conceive_v in_o form_n of_o a_o prayer_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o way_n i_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v pronounce_v so_o that_o the_o people_n may_v hear_v and_o pray_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n but_o it_o be_v say_v now_o with_o a_o low_a voice_n lest_o the_o people_n hear_v and_o understand_v but_o to_o the_o purpose_n in_o the_o canon_n it_o be_v say_v supplices_fw-la te_fw-la rogamus_fw-la omnipotens_fw-la deus_fw-la ....._o ut_fw-la quotquot_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la altaris_fw-la participatione_fw-la sacro_fw-la sanctum_fw-la filii_fw-la tui_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la sumpserimus_fw-la omni_fw-la benedictione_n coelesti_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la repleamur_fw-la i._n e._n we_o humble_o pray_v thou_o almighty_a god_n that_o so_o many_o of_o we_o as_o shall_v in_o partake_v of_o the_o altar_n receive_v the_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o son_n may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o heavenly_a blessing_n and_o grace_n hence_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o they_o who_o receive_v the_o one_o element_n shall_v also_o receive_v the_o other_o since_o they_o be_v conjoin_v in_o the_o canon_n and_o not_o any_o papist_n can_v deny_v that_o the_o custom_n be_v otherwise_o at_o that_o time_n and_o some_o hundred_o year_n thereafter_o four_o merit_n 4._o man_n merit_n concern_v the_o merit_n of_o man_n it_o be_v true_a they_o pray_v after_o the_o agnus_n dei_fw-la be_v sing_v in_o these_o word_n haec_fw-la sacro_fw-la sancta_fw-la commixtio_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la fiat_fw-la mihi_fw-la omnibusque_fw-la sumentibus_fw-la salus_fw-la mentis_fw-la &_o corporis_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la promerendam_fw-la &_o capescendam_fw-la praeparatio_fw-la salutaris_fw-la per_fw-la eundem_fw-la christum_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la but_o whether_o the_o word_n capescendam_fw-la do_v not_o declare_v the_o other_o word_n promerendam_fw-la to_o be_v take_v there_o improper_o or_o if_o the_o word_n promerendam_fw-la shall_v be_v take_v proper_o for_o deserve_v let_v it_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n where_o it_o be_v say_v express_o nobis_fw-la quoque_fw-la peccatoribus_fw-la famulis_fw-la tuis_fw-la de_fw-la multitudine_fw-la miserationum_fw-la tuarum_fw-la sperantibus_fw-la partem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la &_o societatem_fw-la donare_fw-la digneris_fw-la cum_fw-la tuis_fw-la sanctis_fw-la apostolis_n &_o martyribus_fw-la ......_o &_o cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la sanctis_fw-la tuis_fw-la intra_fw-la quorum_fw-la nos_fw-la consortium_fw-la non_fw-la aestimater_n meriti_fw-la sed_fw-la veniae_fw-la quaesimus_fw-la largitor_fw-la admit_v per_fw-la christum_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la that_o be_v we_o beseech_v thou_o that_o thou_o will_v be_v please_v to_o give_v free_o unto_o we_o sinner_n thy_o servant_n hope_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o compassion_n some_o part_n and_o fellowship_n with_o thy_o holy_a apostle_n and_o martyr_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o saint_n into_o who_o society_n we_o beseech_v admit_v we_o thou_o not_o reckon_v our_o deserve_n but_o grant_v we_o pardon_v for_o christ_n our_o lord_n sake_n who_o weigh_v these_o word_n serious_o can_v imagine_v that_o the_o first_o contriver_n of_o the_o canon_n can_v plead_v for_o salvation_n by_o his_o own_o merit_n or_o deserve_n certain_o these_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n do_v renounce_v all_o our_o merit_n and_o teach_v we_o to_o rely_v upon_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n and_o therefore_o unless_o the_o first_o prayer_n be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o canon_n the_o word_n promerendam_fw-la be_v declare_v by_o capescendam_fw-la that_o be_v they_o pray_v that_o the_o communion_n may_v be_v a_o save_a preparation_n for_o attain_v eternal_a life_n and_o hereby_o we_o may_v learn_v how_o to_o expound_v that_o word_n mereamur_fw-la in_o many_o passage_n of_o the_o ancient_n as_o i_o have_v touch_v before_o i_o conclude_v this_o point_n see_v the_o canon_n have_v nothing_o of_o proper_a sacrifice_n in_o it_o nor_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o order_v that_o they_o who_o receive_v the_o bread_n shall_v also_o receive_v the_o cup_n and_o it_o take_v away_o the_o merit_n of_o man_n work_n it_o be_v the_o mighty_a providence_n of_o god_n for_o the_o conviction_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o the_o canon_n continue_v when_o so_o many_o change_n have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o missal_n and_o also_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a i_o will_v not_o say_v prudence_n or_o wisdom_n but_o policy_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n that_o they_o will_v not_o pronounce_v the_o canon_n so_o that_o the_o people_n may_v know_v and_o understand_v it_o lest_o the_o people_n know_v those_o error_n which_o be_v so_o plain_o contrary_a unto_o the_o canon_n i_o have_v also_o observe_v another_o place_n 〈◊〉_d a_o notable_a 〈◊〉_d and_o change_v in_o a_o prayer_n after_o the_o pax_n there_o be_v a_o prayer_n in_o these_o word_n o_o god_n father_n fountain_n and_o original_n of_o all_o goodness_n who_o be_v move_v in_o mercy_n will_v thou_o thy_o only_o beget_v son_n shall_v for_o we_o descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o assume_v flesh_n who_o unworthy_a i_o hold_v here_o in_o my_o hand_n i_o adore_v thou_o i_o glorify_v thou_o and_o i_o praise_v thou_o with_o my_o whole_a mind_n and_o intention_n of_o my_o heart_n and_o i_o pray_v that_o thou_o will_v not_o forsake_v thy_o servant_n but_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o serve_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a and_o live_a god_n with_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o chaste_a body_n for_o the_o same_o christ_n our_o lord_n sake_n we_o see_v this_o prayer_n be_v direct_v from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n unto_o god_n the_o father_n and_o so_o have_v the_o first_o contriver_n order_v it_o but_o now_o in_o the_o missal_n be_v a_o division_n and_o between_o the_o word_n i_o hold_v in_o my_o hand_n and_z i_o adore_v thou_o etc._n etc._n the_o rubric_n say_v hic_fw-la inclinet_fw-la se_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la ad_fw-la hostiam_fw-la dicens_fw-la te_fw-la adoro_fw-la te_fw-la glorifico_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o if_o the_o word_n precede_v be_v only_o direct_v unto_o the_o father_n and_o the_o word_n follow_v be_v direct_v unto_o the_o hosty_a
emperor_n the_o german_a emperor_n and_o be_v many_o way_n trouble_v for_o bodislaus_n who_o have_v kill_v his_o brother_n because_o he_o have_v submit_v unto_o the_o emperor_n or_o rather_o for_o covetousness_n of_o the_o dukedom_n of_o bohem_n rebel_v and_o with_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o hungar_n continue_v war_n the_o space_n of_o 14_o year_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n his_o own_o brother_n henry_n with_o other_o prince_n of_o germany_n fight_v many_o battle_n against_o he_o in_o the_o end_n they_o all_o convene_v their_o force_n and_o as_o he_o be_v cross_v the_o rhine_n with_o his_o army_n they_o come_v unaware_o upon_o that_o part_n which_o have_v cross_v and_o at_o first_o take_v his_o ship_n the_o emperor_n be_v sore_o move_v that_o he_o can_v not_o come_v at_o his_o army_n and_o betake_v himself_o with_o such_o as_o be_v with_o he_o unto_o prayer_n and_o the_o next_o morning_n all_o his_o adversary_n be_v scatter_v neither_o know_v they_o upon_o what_o motive_n such_o fear_n have_v overtake_v they_o the_o italian_n now_o hear_v of_o his_o success_n and_o be_v oppress_v by_o berengarius_fw-la the_o iii_o they_o and_o especial_o pope_n agapet_n do_v invite_v otho_n to_o deliver_v the_o church_n and_o italy_n he_o be_v not_o italy_n make_v conquest_n in_o italy_n slow_a and_o vanquish_v the_o oppressor_n and_o then_o by_o all_o the_o italian_n he_o be_v salute_v augustus_n and_o emperor_n tho._n couper_n ad_fw-la an._n 962._o afterward_o his_o elder_a son_n ludolf_n take_v it_o ill_a that_o his_o father_n do_v marry_v again_o and_o conrade_n duke_n of_o lorraine_n the_o emperor_n son-in-law_n take_v it_o also_o ill_a that_o he_o have_v leave_v berengarius_fw-la governor_n of_o italy_n they_o conspire_v against_o otho_n ludolf_n be_v take_v and_o conrade_n flee_v within_o some_o month_n he_o receive_v they_o both_o into_o favour_n then_o the_o hungar_n do_v raise_v such_o a_o army_n that_o they_o think_v themselves_o invincible_a and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o sclavonian_n rise_v against_o otho_n he_o subdue_v they_o both_o then_o pope_n john_n the_o xiii_o and_o his_o faction_n at_o rome_n begin_v to_o envy_v the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o german_n and_o send_v to_o adelbert_n the_o son_n of_o berengarius_fw-la promise_v assistance_n if_o he_o will_v deliver_v rome_n and_o italy_n and_o their_o adverse_a party_n with_o two_o cardinal_n send_v unto_o otho_n entreat_v that_o he_o will_v come_v unto_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n for_o both_o be_v in_o danger_n when_o pope_n john_n have_v intelligence_n hereof_o he_o cause_v the_o nose_n of_o the_o one_o cardinal_n to_o be_v cut_v off_o and_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o other_o otho_n compose_v his_o affair_n in_o germany_n the_o best_a way_n he_o can_v and_o hasten_v into_o italy_n he_o take_v adelbert_n captive_a and_o come_v to_o rome_n and_o be_v crown_v by_o pope_n john_n against_o his_o will_n he_o think_v it_o not_o a_o fit_a time_n to_o arraign_v pope_n john_n because_o all_o italy_n be_v in_o uproar_n but_o do_v exhort_v he_o to_o live_v as_o it_o become_v the_o apostolical_a see_v he_o send_v berengarius_fw-la captive_a to_o bamberg_n in_o germany_n and_o adelbert_n into_o constantinople_n to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n there_o thereafter_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o rome_n entreat_v otho_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n and_o republic_n for_o there_o have_v be_v no_o counsel_n in_o a_o long_a time_n etc._n etc._n otho_n have_v appease_v the_o tumult_n in_o the_o city_n and_o have_v assurance_n account_n and_o call_v the_o pope_n to_o a_o account_n of_o fidelity_n call_v a_o synod_n in_o lateran_n which_o from_o the_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n out_o of_o germany_n italy_n and_o france_n be_v term_v the_o great_a synod_n and_o summon_v pope_n john_n to_o appear_v and_o hear_v his_o cause_n examine_v john_n return_v answer_v that_o he_o will_v not_o appear_v because_o he_o know_v that_o the_o emperor_n purpose_v to_o dispossess_v he_o and_o he_o accurse_v they_o all_o who_o sit_v in_o that_o synod_n and_o degrade_v they_o all_o of_o their_o function_n notwithstanding_o his_o curse_n the_o synod_n continue_v and_o the_o article_n against_o the_o pope_n be_v read_v first_o that_o pope_n john_n do_v not_o observe_v the_o canonical_a hour_n 2._o when_o he_o say_v mass_n he_o do_v not_o communicate_v 3._o he_o ordain_v deacon_n in_o a_o stable_n 4._o he_o have_v commit_v incense_v with_o two_o sister_n 5._o when_o he_o be_v play_v at_o dice_n he_o call_v on_o the_o devil_n for_o help_v 6._o for_o money_n he_o have_v make_v boy_n of_o ten_o year_n old_a to_o the_o bishop_n 7._o he_o deflower_v virgin_n and_o of_o the_o lateran_n palace_n he_o make_v a_o stew_n 8._o he_o lay_v with_o stephana_n his_o father_n concubine_n 9_o he_o cause_v house_n to_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n 10._o he_o drink_v to_o the_o devil_n catalogue_n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 11._o have_v more_o article_n from_o luithpr_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 7._o when_o these_o thing_n be_v propound_v the_o emperor_n say_v i_o know_v that_o envy_n follow_v honour_v ...._o and_o in_o this_o case_n i_o conjure_v you_o all_o that_o you_o do_v not_o propound_v any_o thing_n against_o he_o in_o his_o absence_n but_o what_o you_o know_v to_o be_v true_a all_o the_o synod_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v one_o man_n do_v answer_n if_o these_o and_o worse_a crime_n have_v not_o be_v commit_v by_o pope_n john_n let_v saint_n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o by_o his_o word_n shut_v heaven_n upon_o the_o unworthy_a never_o absolve_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n let_v we_o be_v accurse_v and_o at_o the_o last_o day_n let_v we_o be_v rank_v on_o the_o left_a hand_n the_o emperor_n send_v in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n unto_o the_o pope_n a_o copy_n of_o these_o article_n will_v he_o to_o come_v and_o purge_v himself_o and_o he_o promise_v by_o oath_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o that_o cause_n otherwise_o then_o then_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n do_v prescribe_v he_o return_v answer_v thus_o pope_n john_n unto_o all_o those_o bishop_n contempt_n we_o hear_v say_v that_o you_o will_v make_v contemn_v the_o pope_n contemn_v another_o pope_n which_o if_o you_o do_v i_o excommunicate_v you_o from_o the_o almighty_a god_n that_o you_o have_v no_o power_n to_o consecrare_fw-la nor_o say_v mass_n when_o this_o be_v read_v more_o bishop_n be_v come_v from_o france_n and_o italy_n to_o wit_n henry_n of_o trevirs_n uvido_z of_o muzia_n sigulf_n of_o placentia_n etc._n etc._n and_o with_o one_o voice_n they_o write_v again_o contemn_v and_o be_v contemn_v unto_o he_o thus_o unto_o the_o great_a highpriest_n and_o universal_a pope_n john_n otho_n by_o the_o clemency_n of_o god_n emperor_n augustus_n and_o the_o holy_a synod_n of_o rome_n gather_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n greeting_n in_o the_o last_o synod_n which_o be_v hold_v the_o 6_o of_o novemb_n we_o do_v direct_a letter_n unto_o you_o wherein_o be_v contain_v the_o word_n of_o your_o accuser_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o accusation_n and_o in_o these_o also_o we_o do_v entreat_v your_o greatness_n as_o be_v just_a and_o we_o have_v receive_v letter_n from_o you_o not_o as_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o time_n but_o as_o the_o vanity_n of_o your_o counsellor_n will_v ....._o it_o be_v write_v in_o your_o letter_n not_o as_o become_v a_o bishop_n but_o a_o foolish_a child_n to_o write_v for_o you_o have_v excommunicate_v we_o all_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v power_n to_o sing_v mass_n or_o order_v any_o church_n affair_n if_o we_o shall_v ordain_v another_o bishop_n for_o the_o romish_a sea_n ...._o if_o you_o delay_v not_o to_o come_v unto_o the_o synod_n and_o purge_v yourself_o certain_o we_o will_v obey_v your_o authority_n but_o if_o which_o god_n forbid_v you_o dissemble_v to_o come_v and_o purge_v you_o of_o those_o capital_a crime_n especial_o see_v nothing_o hinder_v you_o no_o sail_v by_o sea_n nor_o distance_n of_o way_n nor_o health_n we_o will_v not_o regard_v your_o excommunication_n but_o rather_o we_o throw_v it_o back_o on_o you_o because_o we_o may_v do_v it_o just_o judas_n the_o traitor_n and_o seller_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v receive_v with_o the_o other_o apostle_n power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v ...._o and_o so_o long_o as_o he_o continue_v good_a among_o the_o disciple_n he_o can_v bind_v and_o loose_v but_o when_o the_o murderer_n be_v kill_v with_o the_o poison_n of_o covetousness_n and_o will_v kill_v life_n who_o can_v he_o bind_v or_o loose_v but_o himself_o who_o he_o do_v strangle_v in_o a_o unhappy_a rope_n give_v novemh_o 21._o and_o send_v by_o adrian_n a_o cardinal_n priest_n and_o benedict_n
if_o he_o have_v pursue_v his_o victory_n otho_n not_o dare_v to_o encounter_v he_o any_o more_o flee_v into_o a_o boat_n to_o escape_v by_o sea_n and_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o pirate_n who_o carry_v he_o into_o sicily_n not_o know_v who_o he_o be_v he_o be_v ransom_v and_o return_v into_o rome_n where_o he_o die_v an._n 984._o then_o again_o be_v contention_n at_o rome_n for_o a_o new_a emperor_n the_o roman_n will_v have_v have_v their_o consul_n crescentius_n choose_v henry_n duke_n of_o bavier_n and_o cousin_n of_o otho_n the_o two_o do_v challenge_v the_o right_n of_o educate_v the_o late_a emperor_n son_n otho_n and_o seek_v the_o empire_n for_o himself_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n for_o fear_n of_o crescentius_n do_v with_o one_o consent_n speedy_o choose_v otho_n although_o but_o 12_o year_n old_a 6._o otho_n the_o iii_o with_o natural_a fortitude_n be_v learn_v in_o grecian_a wisdom_n death_n the_o emperor_n be_v great_a again_o and_o put_v a_o pope_n to_o death_n for_o his_o rare_a gift_n he_o be_v account_v the_o wonder_n of_o the_o world_n he_o suppress_v crescentius_n and_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o italy_n he_o cause_v his_o uncle_n bruno_n to_o be_v choose_v to_o the_o papal_a chair_n this_o be_v pope_n gregory_n the_o v._o the_o roman_n do_v hardly_o condescend_v unto_o his_o election_n and_o therefore_o when_o otho_n be_v go_v into_o germany_n crescentius_n cause_v pope_n john_n the_o xviii_o to_o be_v elect_v the_o emperor_n return_v with_o speed_n and_o force_v the_o roman_n to_o submit_v and_o deprive_v pope_n john_n of_o life_n aventinus_n write_v that_o they_o throw_v his_o body_n over_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o capitol_n and_o since_o that_o day_n a_o pope_n may_v not_o visit_v the_o capitol_n also_o he_o do_v set_v crescentius_n upon_o a_o vile_a horse_n after_o he_o have_v cut_v off_o his_o nose_n and_o ear_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v carry_v through_o the_o city_n and_o then_o hang_v he_o the_o roman_n be_v still_o discontent_v and_o fear_v lest_o the_o empire_n may_v return_v to_o constantinople_n because_o otho_n be_v so_o near_o in_o blood_n unto_o basilius_n and_o so_o a_o new_a mutiny_n begin_v so_o soon_o as_o the_o emperor_n have_v intelligence_n he_o have_v no_o male_a child_n by_o advice_n of_o the_o german_a prince_n say_v naucler_n emperor_n the_o order_n for_o elect_v a_o emperor_n chronogr_n vol._n 2._o gener_fw-la 34._o and_o of_o his_o uncle_n gregory_n the_o v._o will_v provide_v against_o insurrection_n in_o time_n come_v many_o do_v call_v this_o the_o work_n of_o pope_n gregory_n but_o if_o his_o power_n at_o that_o time_n be_v due_o consider_v we_o may_v rather_o think_v with_o naucler_n that_o otho_n lay_v this_o foundation_n of_o elect_v a_o emperor_n first_o that_o from_o henceforth_o none_o may_v challenge_v the_o empire_n by_o right_a of_o inheritance_n but_o by_o election_n only_o 2._o that_o the_o electer_n shall_v all_o be_v german_n 3._o that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v be_v a_o german_n 4._o when_o the_o seat_n be_v vacant_a the_o empire_n shall_v be_v administer_v by_o the_o electer_n 5._o that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v be_v choose_v at_o frankford_n and_o be_v call_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n until_o he_o be_v crown_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o then_o be_v call_v caesar_n augustus_n 6._o some_o do_v add_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v be_v crown_v with_o three_o crown_n one_o of_o straw_n in_o mentz_n another_o of_o iron_n at_o milan_n and_o the_o three_o of_o gold_n at_o rome_n he_o devise_v some_o of_o these_o condition_n to_o satisfy_v the_o italian_n and_o by_o the_o other_o he_o think_v to_o establish_v the_o empire_n in_o germany_n the_o article_n thereafter_o be_v more_o particular_o clear_v henry_n duke_n of_o bavier_n for_o the_o good_a service_n he_o do_v for_o the_o emperor_n at_o rome_n as_o follow_v get_v the_o first_o place_n of_o the_o civil_a estate_n and_o be_v make_v portitor_n ensis_fw-la the_o marquis_n of_o brandeburg_n be_v design_v camerarius_fw-la and_o the_o count_n palatine_n of_o rhine_n be_v create_v archidapifer_n unto_o they_o be_v conjoin_v three_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n colein_n and_o trevers_n and_o if_o these_o can_v not_o agree_v the_o odd_a voice_n be_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o duke_n of_o bohem._n the_o peer_n of_o france_n be_v not_o well_o please_v because_o their_o kingdom_n be_v altogether_o exclude_v nevertheless_o because_o their_o royal_a race_n be_v late_o change_v from_o the_o blood_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a to_o the_o house_n of_o hugh_n le_fw-fr grand_fw-fr earl_n of_o paris_n they_o let_v it_o pass_v platin._n in_o gregor_n 5._o in_o the_o year_n 1001_o the_o saracen_n invade_v italy_n and_o take_v capua_n otho_n do_v quick_o overthrow_v they_o and_o return_v into_o rome_n say_v that_o he_o will_v reform_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v amiss_o in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o church_n according_a to_o ancient_a custom_n sigon_n de_fw-fr regn_n ital._n lib._n 7._o and_o some_o write_v that_o he_o purpose_v to_o fix_v his_o manure_n at_o rome_n he_o begin_v to_o build_v a_o palace_n in_o the_o place_n where_o julian_n the_o apostate_n have_v dwell_v the_o roman_n in_o a_o sudden_a uproar_n slay_v many_o german_n take_v otho_n and_o have_v slay_v he_o in_o his_o chamber_n if_o henry_n duke_n of_o bavier_n and_o hugh_n a_o italian_a marquis_n have_v not_o feign_v a_o capitulation_n with_o the_o citizen_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n otho_n disguise_v himself_o and_o escape_v their_o hand_n it_o be_v not_o without_o the_o supreme_a providence_n say_v genebrard_n in_o chronol_n lib._n 3._o about_o the_o year_n 315._o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o church_n may_v have_v place_n as_o it_o be_v foretell_v by_o daniel_n if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n foretell_v by_o paul_n and_o john_n he_o have_v hit_v the_o mark_n otho_n return_v into_o germany_n and_o thereafter_o he_o go_v back_o to_o rome_n where_o he_o be_v poison_v by_o a_o golden_a cup_n which_o the_o wife_n of_o crescentius_n send_v unto_o he_o and_o his_o body_n be_v carry_v into_o germany_n an._n 1002._o crantz_n in_o saxon._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 26._o chap._n ii_o of_o pope_n cardinal_n baronius_n in_o tom_n 10._o ad_fw-la an._n 903._o §_o 1._o forewarn_v his_o reader_n apostle_n pope_n be_v not_o successor_n of_o apostle_n that_o now_o he_o shall_v see_v the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n in_o the_o temple_n as_o it_o be_v foretold_v by_o daniel_n and_o by_o our_o lord_n what_o do_v he_o insinuate_v in_o these_o word_n but_o that_o the_o reader_n shall_v fly_v out_o of_o babel_n and_o leave_v her_o abomination_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o he_o continue_v lament_v and_o cry_v fie_o for_o shame_n alas_o for_o sorrow_n that_o so_o many_o monster_n horrible_a to_o be_v see_v be_v thrust_v into_o the_o see_v which_o deserve_v reverence_n of_o angel_n how_o many_o misery_n how_o many_o tragedy_n have_v proceed_v from_o they_o and_o fascicul_n temp_n ad_fw-la an._n 894._o say_v oh_o oh_o good_a god_n how_o be_v the_o gold_n become_v so_o darken_v how_o many_o scandal_n do_v we_o read_v that_o have_v be_v about_o these_o time_n in_o the_o apostolical_a see_v which_o thou_o have_v keep_v with_o so_o great_a zeal_n hitherto_o what_o contention_n sect_n ambition_n intrusion_n persecution_n oh_o the_o bad_a time_n when_o the_o godly_a man_n have_v fail_v and_o truth_n be_v perish_v from_o the_o child_n of_o man_n alas_o what_o convention_n what_o congregation_n what_o man_n shall_v now_o be_v secure_a see_v primitive_a holiness_n have_v so_o fail_v a_o little_a before_o an._n 914._o he_o say_v there_o be_v present_v unto_o lewis_n a_o monster_n with_o a_o dog_n head_n and_o all_o the_o other_o member_n of_o a_o man_n which_o do_v resemble_v say_v he_o the_o estate_n of_o that_o time_n for_o man_n without_o a_o head_n do_v wander_v hither_o and_o thither_o bark_v like_o dog_n and_o genebrard_n in_o chronol_n ad_fw-la an._n 901._o say_v this_o age_n be_v unhappy_a for_o one_o thing_n that_o in_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o 150_o year_n be_v about_o fifty_o pope_n from_o john_n the_o viii_o till_o leo_n the_o ix_o which_o make_v defection_n from_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o predecessor_n and_o they_o be_v apotactici_n apostataeve_fw-la potius_fw-la quàm_fw-la apostolici_fw-la that_o be_v out_o of_o all_o order_n and_o apostate_n rather_o than_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o naucler_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la gener_fw-la 31._o speak_v of_o pope_n romanus_n say_v behold_v how_o far_o these_o have_v degenerate_v from_o their_o predecessor_n for_o these_o holy_a man_n do_v maintain_v the_o decree_n of_o their_o predecessor_n as_o their_o own_o but_o now_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o do_v exerce_fw-la enmity_n one_o against_o another_o no_o other_o
apparent_a virtue_n come_v not_o from_o we_o but_o from_o god_n or_o lest_o it_o be_v think_v that_o we_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n worthy_a of_o praise_n as_o of_o ourselves_o let_v we_o ascribe_v all_o unto_o god_n and_o let_v we_o acknowledge_v that_o be_v of_o his_o gift_n whatsoever_o we_o do_v well_o on_o gal._n 2._o paul_n demonstrate_v in_o this_o place_n that_o he_o be_v equal_a unto_o peter_n for_o say_v he_o he_o who_o wrought_v by_o peter_n in_o the_o apostleship_n of_o circumcision_n wrought_v also_o by_o i_o among_o the_o gentile_n ......_o some_o say_v it_o be_v not_o peter_n the_o excellent_a follower_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v rebuke_v by_o paul_n but_o another_o cephas_n ..._o but_o hear_v most_o wise_a man_n for_o neither_o do_v we_o say_v that_o peter_n as_o ignorant_a what_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v be_v rebuke_v by_o paul_n but_o we_o say_v that_o he_o willing_o do_v admit_v reproof_n that_o he_o may_v give_v unto_o other_o a_o example_n of_o patience_n on_o eph._n 1._o at_o these_o word_n the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n in_o we_o he_o say_v nor_o be_v it_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v how_o great_a be_v that_o power_n and_o virtue_n which_o change_v a_o man_n mind_n from_o the_o wont_a custom_n and_o to_o pull_v it_o out_o of_o error_n from_o which_o to_o draw_v a_o man_n stick_v in_o they_o so_o great_a power_n be_v requisite_a that_o so_o great_a power_n scarce_o appear_v in_o raise_v the_o dead_a for_o the_o lord_n do_v raise_v the_o dead_a with_o one_o word_n and_o yet_o he_o convert_v not_o the_o jew_n to_o he_o by_o persuade_v with_o multitude_n of_o word_n and_o miraculous_a work_n he_o say_v therefore_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v necessary_a that_o we_o may_v learn_v the_o same_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v that_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o by_o the_o great_a power_n and_o work_n of_o god_n for_o as_o he_o raise_v christ_n from_o the_o dead_a so_o have_v he_o bring_v we_o unto_o light_n when_o we_o be_v dead_a and_o have_v draw_v we_o from_o infidelity_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o virtue_n on_o cap._n 2._o yea_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v a_o great_a power_n to_o bring_v into_o the_o right_a way_n stray_v soul_n and_o addict_v to_o sin_n then_o to_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o at_o these_o word_n by_o who_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v he_o say_v he_o put_v in_o this_o as_o be_v strike_v with_o astonishment_n wonder_v at_o the_o unspeakable_a gift_n of_o god_n for_o he_o say_v you_o be_v not_o save_v by_o your_o travel_n or_o work_v but_o only_o by_o grace_n as_o for_o your_o work_n certain_o you_o be_v worthy_a of_o wrath_n and_o punishment_n on_o cap._n 6._o the_o apostle_n show_v how_o parent_n may_v bring_v their_o child_n into_o obedience_n if_o you_o will_v say_v he_o have_v your_o child_n obedient_a unto_o you_o bring_v they_o unto_o and_o acquaint_v they_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o say_v not_o let_v monk_n study_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o christian_a and_o especial_o of_o he_o who_o converse_v in_o worldly_a affair_n and_o the_o rather_o that_o he_o have_v need_n of_o more_o help_n as_o who_o be_v drive_v among_o the_o wave_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o it_o be_v most_o profitable_a for_o thou_o that_o thy_o child_n both_o hear_v and_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o out_o of_o they_o they_o shall_v learn_v honour_v thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n but_o if_o thou_o breed_v thy_o child_n in_o the_o book_n of_o heathen_n they_o will_v learn_v very_o bad_a thing_n out_o of_o they_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v if_o they_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n on_o 1_o thess_n 1._o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o soul_n be_v bring_v unto_o faith_n and_o salvation_n not_o by_o persuasion_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n on_o 2_o thess_n 2._o the_o lord_n will_v not_o come_v unless_o there_o come_v first_o a_o depart_a that_o be_v the_o antichrist_n who_o he_o call_v a_o depart_a because_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o will_v cause_v many_o to_o depart_v from_o christ_n ...._o so_o that_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o a_o god_n not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n only_o but_o he_o will_v sit_v in_o all_o church_n every_o where_o show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n he_o say_v not_o say_v but_o show_v that_o be_v he_o will_v attempt_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v god_n for_o he_o will_v make_v such_o great_a work_n and_o sign_n that_o he_o may_v deceive_v all_o man_n ...._o what_o withhold_v that_o be_v hinder_v but_o what_o be_v that_o some_o have_v say_v it_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n some_o say_v the_o roman_a empire_n to_o which_o opinion_n john_n chrysostom_n agree_v for_o unless_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v destroy_v antichrist_n can_v have_v no_o way_n to_o do_v as_o he_o will_v paul_n have_v express_v this_o dark_o for_o he_o will_v not_o rash_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o roman_n nor_o cast_v himself_o into_o danger_n in_o vain_a for_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o roman_a empire_n will_v be_v take_v away_o short_o they_o present_o will_v have_v bury_v he_o quick_a as_o threaten_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o they_o will_v have_v kill_v all_o the_o believer_n that_o follow_v he_o as_o if_o they_o wish_v the_o overthrow_n of_o so_o great_a a_o empire_n ...._o only_o he_o that_o with_o hold_n shall_v withhold_v ...._o that_o be_v when_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o then_o shall_v he_o come_v for_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v under_o the_o fear_n of_o this_o no_o man_n will_v easy_o submit_v himself_o unto_o another_o but_o when_o this_o be_v overthrow_v he_o will_v begin_v another_o dominion_n and_o as_o if_o all_o be_v he_o he_o will_v pervert_v the_o thing_n that_o concern_v both_o god_n and_o man_n for_o as_o other_o monarchy_n be_v take_v away_o one_o by_o another_o before_o the_o height_n of_o the_o roman_n ...._o so_o this_o kingdom_n of_o the_o roman_n shall_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o antichrist_n and_o daniel_n have_v prophesy_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o some_o understand_v otherwise_o but_o i_o will_v have_v thou_o to_o think_v as_o we_o have_v say_v with_o bless_a chrysostom_n on_o 1_o tim._n 1._o at_o the_o last_o word_n he_o say_v thou_o see_v how_o to_o search_v curious_o into_o divine_a thing_n turn_v into_o blasphemy_n for_o it_o be_v injurious_a against_o god_n when_o we_o endeavour_v to_o comprehend_v in_o our_o mind_n and_o think_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o his_o will_n and_o dispensation_n on_o cap._n 3._o one_o may_v ask_v why_o the_o apostle_n omit_v the_o priest_n because_o what_o thing_n be_v speak_v of_o bishop_n belong_v unto_o priest_n for_o these_o be_v command_v to_o instruct_v other_o and_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o be_v inferior_n unto_o they_o by_o the_o only_a ceremony_n of_o consecration_n on_o 2_o tim._n 3._o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a amendment_n say_v he_o must_v be_v seek_v from_o the_o scripture_n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v lack_v to_o he_o which_o walk_v according_a to_o god_n if_o therefore_o thou_o desire_v to_o be_v perfect_a and_o wish_v neither_o to_o be_v cast_v down_o with_o adversity_n nor_o puff_v up_o with_o prosperity_n for_o that_o be_v perfection_n seek_v advice_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n when_o thou_o want_v i_o and_o since_o he_o write_v of_o such_o read_n unto_o timothy_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n how_o much_o more_o be_v we_o to_o be_v exhort_v thereunto_o which_o have_v need_v of_o this_o spirit_n and_o observe_v how_o we_o can_v be_v upright_o and_o perfect_a unless_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v help_v we_o on_o heb._n 9_o so_o and_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v by_o who_o be_v he_o offer_v by_o himself_o and_o not_o by_o another_o man_n for_o though_o he_o be_v the_o highpriest_n he_o be_v also_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o oblation_n to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o ...._o why_o say_v he_o of_o many_o and_o not_o of_o all_o man_n because_o all_o man_n believe_v not_o but_o christ_n death_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o perdition_n of_o all_o man_n that_o be_v it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o all_o man_n perish_v not_o and_z and_z it_o be_v pay_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n and_o he_o die_v for_o all_o man_n so_o far_o as_o be_v in_o he_o and_o nevertheless_o he_o have_v not_o take_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n because_o they_o fight_v against_o he_o and_o so_o they_o
assure_v that_o this_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi because_o for_o confirmation_n he_o add_v the_o lord_n say_v the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v give_v you_o be_v my_o flesh_n and_o on_o these_o word_n in_o joh._n 6._o he_o say_v note_v well_o that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v eat_v by_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o only_o some_o figuration_n of_o the_o lord_n flesh_n but_o the_o same_o flesh_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o say_v not_o the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v give_v be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o flesh_n but_o it_o be_v my_o flesh_n for_o by_o mysterious_a word_n it_o be_v transform_v by_o mystical_a blessing_n and_o accession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o the_o lord_n flesh_n and_o at_o the_o word_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o add_v when_o we_o hear_v unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n we_o must_v in_o take_v the_o divine_a mystery_n or_o sacrament_n hold_v undoubted_a faith_n and_o not_o ask_v what_o way_n for_o the_o natural_a man_n that_o be_v who_o follow_v human_a and_o natural_a thought_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o spiritual_a thing_n which_o be_v above_o nature_n and_o so_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o the_o lord_n flesh_n of_o which_o they_o who_o be_v not_o partaker_n be_v not_o partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n because_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v jesus_n who_o be_v eternal_a life_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o mere_a man_n but_o of_o god_n and_o be_v able_a to_o deify_v we_o to_o wit_n be_v unite_v unto_o the_o godhead_n that_o flesh_n be_v also_o very_o food_n because_o it_o endure_v not_o for_o a_o little_a time_n nor_o can_v be_v corrupt_v as_o corruptible_a food_n but_o it_o be_v a_o help_n unto_o eternal_a life_n in_o these_o his_o word_n we_o see_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o absolute_o as_o he_o do_v seem_v to_o speak_v on_o matthew_n but_o as_o he_o speak_v on_o mark_n the_o bread_n be_v not_o only_o some_o figuration_n and_o then_o he_o say_v it_o be_v transform_v by_o mystical_a blessing_n and_o accession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o he_o say_v in_o take_v the_o divine_a mystery_n we_o must_v hold_v undoubted_a faith_n then_o they_o who_o have_v not_o faith_n undoubted_a can_v eat_v that_o mysterious_a sacrament_n and_o we_o must_v not_o ask_v what_o way_n to_o wit_n as_o they_o do_v now_o whether_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n or_o whether_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v to_o nothing_o and_o christ_n body_n come_v into_o the_o form_n of_o the_o bread_n or_o etc._n etc._n theophylact_fw-mi be_v far_o from_o assert_v any_o of_o these_o way_n and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o flesh_n be_v very_o food_n because_o it_o endure_v not_o for_o a_o little_a time_n nor_o can_v be_v corrupt_v he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o visible_a bread_n which_o experience_n teach_v to_o be_v corruptible_a but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n flesh_n which_o we_o receive_v by_o faith_n in_o a_o word_n then_o theophylact_fw-mi speak_v nothing_o of_o transubstantiation_n but_o rather_o against_o it_o and_o the_o papist_n delude_v themselves_o and_o abuse_v his_o word_n a_o four_o thing_n they_o object_v out_o of_o theophylact_fw-mi that_o he_o assert_v the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n when_o he_o say_v on_o joh._n 21_o he_o who_o dare_v not_o ask_v concern_v the_o traitor_n but_o do_v commit_v the_o question_n unto_o another_o now_o the_o government_n of_o all_o be_v concredit_v unto_o he_o and_o on_o the_o margin_n porsena_n add_v praefectura_fw-la omnium_fw-la petro_n tributa_fw-la and_o it_o follow_v as_o if_o christ_n be_v say_v unto_o peter_n now_o i_o bring_v thou_o forth_o that_o thou_o may_v govern_v the_o world_n and_o follow_v i_o and_o on_o the_o margin_n praeest_fw-la petrus_n orbi_fw-la but_o to_o expound_v these_o word_n as_o if_o peter_n be_v the_o only_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n be_v whole_o concredit_v unto_o peter_n alone_o be_v far_o contrary_a unto_o the_o word_n and_o mind_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi as_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o he_o on_o gal._n 2._o where_o he_o assert_v that_o paul_n be_v equal_a unto_o he_o and_o on_o matth._n 16_o where_o he_o assert_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n peter_n therefore_o be_v a_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n but_o not_o the_o only_a governor_n for_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v as_o much_o governor_n as_o he_o in_o respect_n of_o power_n since_o the_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o all_o with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o word_n as_o theophylact_v assert_n and_o whatsoever_o power_n they_o have_v yet_o they_o have_v no_o civil_a power_n because_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o theophylact_fw-mi on_o rom._n 13._o all_o soul_n even_o apostle_n must_v be_v subject_a unto_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n neither_o do_v the_o word_n of_o porsena_n insinuate_v so_o much_o as_o they_o will_v have_v for_o praefectura_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v but_o a_o subordinate_a power_n and_o a_o little_a jurisdiction_n yea_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n a_o conjunct_a power_n as_o praefectus_fw-la vrbis_fw-la which_o at_o rome_n be_v two_o conjunct_a and_o subordinate_a unto_o the_o power_n of_o the_o former_a so_o this_o be_v all_o the_o power_n which_o they_o can_v bring_v unto_o peter_n from_o the_o word_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi and_o we_o may_v see_v how_o in_o many_o particular_n he_o differ_v from_o the_o tenet_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o favour_v they_o not_o in_o the_o main_a thing_n wherein_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v his_o consent_n 4._o radulph_n a_o benedictine_n of_o flaviak_n in_o this_o century_n write_v 20_o book_n on_o leviticus_n and_o 14_o book_n on_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n as_o witness_v gesner_n in_o the_o preface_n on_o levit._n he_o say_v although_o it_o shall_v move_v we_o not_o a_o little_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o world_n be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o faith_n and_o now_o be_v subject_n unto_o the_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o faith_n be_v declare_v by_o so_o many_o miracle_n and_o testify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o martyr_n yet_o the_o singular_a ground_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o be_v clear_o see_v to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o our_o day_n which_o we_o know_v be_v prefigure_v and_o foretell_v so_o many_o year_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o father_n and_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n here_o by_o the_o way_n note_n that_o not_o only_a radulph_n but_o many_o other_o of_o the_o more_o ancient_a father_n do_v use_v the_o word_n sacrament_n for_o the_o rite_n of_o religion_n yea_o and_o for_o mystery_n and_o very_o large_o or_o homonymous_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v our_o altar_n because_o we_o lay_v our_o oblation_n on_o he_o for_o if_o we_o do_v any_o good_a thing_n we_o hope_v that_o by_o he_o it_o shall_v be_v accept_v of_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v offer_v spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a unto_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n ....._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v furnish_v unto_o we_o matter_n of_o holy_a thought_n ibid._n scarce_o can_v any_o good_a work_n be_v perfect_v without_o admission_n of_o some_o sin_n it_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v fear_v lest_o when_o the_o reward_n of_o perfect_a devotion_n be_v expect_v the_o punishment_n of_o our_o guiltiness_n be_v require_v of_o we_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o that_o angel_n be_v none_o other_o but_o our_o great_a highpriest_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v to_o wit_n he_o be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n unto_o man_n and_o send_v again_o from_o man_n unto_o the_o father_n to_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o man_n before_o the_o father_n he_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n ibid._n cap._n 4_o whatsoever_o man_n can_v do_v for_o himself_o be_v no_o way_n sufficient_a to_o obtain_v forgiveness_n unless_o the_o immaculate_a sacrifice_n of_o that_o just_a one_o do_v commend_v the_o repentance_n of_o sinner_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 3_o when_o you_o do_v any_o good_a thing_n ascribe_v not_o the_o very_a affection_n of_o godliness_n unto_o you_o as_o if_o you_o can_v do_v it_o of_o yourself_o for_o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o we_o at_o his_o good_a pleasure_n both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perfect_v ....._o he_o who_o ascribe_v grace_n unto_o himself_o must_v necessary_o lose_v grace_n for_o which_o he_o be_v not_o thankful_a lib._n 6._o cap._n 3._o he_o die_v who_o discover_v his_o head_n because_o while_o he_o expect_v salvation_n another_o way_n then_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n he_o do_v
just_a and_o i_o suffer_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o youth_n but_o you_o be_v not_o guiltless_a and_o because_o you_o do_v contrary_a unto_o your_o oath_n you_o shall_v not_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o just_a avenger_n and_o your_o portion_n shall_v be_v with_o he_o who_o betray_v his_o master_n they_o stop_v their_o ear_n and_o depart_v with_o the_o royal_a ornament_n alb._n crantz_n in_o saxon._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 20._o say_v some_o report_n these_o circumstance_n another_o way_n thereafter_o they_o send_v he_o as_o prisoner_n to_o ingelheim_n where_o he_o be_v advertise_v that_o they_o be_v talk_v of_o cut_v off_o his_o head_n wherefore_o he_o make_v a_o escape_n and_o go_v to_o leodium_n as_o appear_v in_o epist_n henrici_fw-la regi_fw-la celtar_n in_o fascic_n rer_n expet_n there_o he_o be_v entertain_v honourable_o by_o the_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n otbert_n with_o all_o his_o church_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o pope_n paschalis_n who_o write_v also_o unto_o robert_n earl_n of_o flanders_n to_o pursue_v henry_n with_o all_o his_o follower_n assure_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o offer_v better_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n epist_n paschalis_n tom_n 2._o council_n edit_fw-la colon._n an._n 1551._o otbert_n be_v not_o silent_a and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n of_o leodium_n publish_v a_o apology_n wherein_o he_o say_v it_o be_v apostolical_a to_o follow_v the_o apostle_n as_o it_o be_v prophetical_a to_o follow_v a_o prophet_n but_o as_o our_o sin_n deserve_v the_o apostolical_a who_o shall_v pray_v for_o the_o king_n howbeit_o a_o sinner_n that_o we_o may_v live_v a_o quiet_a and_o apostolical_a life_n under_o he_o be_v so_o contentious_a that_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o live_v in_o peace_n see_v the_o word_n both_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n do_v so_o sound_v i_o the_o daughter_n do_v humble_o ask_v my_o mother_n the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n whence_o come_v this_o authority_n unto_o he_o who_o be_v call_v apostolical_a that_o beside_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o use_v another_o sword_n of_o blood_n against_o her_o subject_n then_o he_o show_v how_o far_o this_o pope_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o step_n of_o gregory_n the_o i._o both_o in_o life_n and_o doctrine_n this_o apology_n be_v loc_n cit_fw-la also_o the_o emperor_n write_v unto_o his_o son_n unto_o the_o bishop_n duke_n and_o other_o potentate_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o they_o will_v cease_v from_o pursue_v he_o and_o his_o friend_n against_o all_o equity_n and_o piety_n and_o at_o several_a time_n he_o appeal_v unto_o the_o pope_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o his_o letter_n in_o fascic_n rer_n expetend_v but_o apology_n supplication_n and_o appeal_n have_v no_o place_n so_o that_o in_o the_o end_n the_o old_a emperor_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o beg_v a_o prebendary_a from_o the_o bishop_n of_o spira_n although_o he_o have_v prefer_v the_o bishop_n unto_o that_o see_v and_o have_v erect_v a_o glorious_a monastery_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n there_o he_o can_v not_o obtain_v so_o much_o so_o he_o return_v private_o unto_o leodium_n and_o die_v his_o body_n lie_v unbury_v in_o a_o old_a desert_a chapel_n five_o year_n and_o then_o be_v bury_v at_o spira_n he_o have_v fight_v 62_o battle_n and_o be_v never_o foil_v he_o die_v an._n 1107._o alb._n crantz_n write_v much_o to_o excuse_v the_o son_n and_o the_o pope_n and_o bitter_o against_o the_o father_n yet_o he_o have_v no_o particular_a fault_n against_o he_o but_o as_o he_o speak_v simony_n and_o contumacy_n of_o the_o eastern_a emperor_n it_o follow_v in_o henry_n the_o v._n chap._n ii_o of_o pope_n 1._o sylvester_n the_o ii_o before_o call_v gerebert_n have_v be_v a_o monk_n in_o devil_n a_o pope_n covenant_v with_o the_o devil_n orleans_n and_o make_v a_o contract_n with_o the_o devil_n to_o advance_v he_o unto_o the_o papacy_n thence_o he_o go_v to_o hispala_n in_o spain_n where_o become_v a_o doctor_n he_o have_v among_o his_o hearer_n otho_n the_o iii_o robert_n king_n of_o france_n lotharius_n a_o man_n of_o noble_a birth_n afterward_o bishop_n of_o senon_n and_o other_o robert_n give_v he_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rheims_n the_o emperor_n advance_v he_o to_o ravenna_n last_o by_o great_a ambition_n and_o aid_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o attain_v the_o papacy_n say_v platina_n and_o other_o the_o emperor_n for_o favour_n of_o his_o master_n give_v unto_o saint_n peter_n eight_o county_n pisa_n senogallia_n favum_fw-la aucona_n fossabrum_fw-la etc._n etc._n vsser_n de_fw-fr stat_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 3._o ex_fw-la gerber_n epi._n 158._o benno_n cardinal_n of_o ostia_n say_v when_o the_o 1000_o year_n be_v expire_v gerebert_n come_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n of_o god_n perdition_n sit_v 4._o year_n and_o as_o by_o the_o response_n of_o satan_n he_o have_v deceive_v many_o so_o by_o the_o same_o response_n he_o be_v deceive_v and_o in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n he_o be_v take_v away_o by_o sudden_a death_n what_o he_o say_v brief_o platina_n declare_v more_o full_o thus_o once_o sylvester_n ask_v the_o devil_n how_o long_a time_n he_o may_v enjoy_v the_o papacy_n the_o answer_n be_v ambiguous_a if_o thou_o go_v not_o to_o jerusalem_n thou_o shall_v never_o die_v after_o four_o year_n and_o one_o month_n he_o be_v say_v mass_n in_o lent_n in_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o rood-church_n that_o be_v call_v jerusalem_n within_o rome_n and_o he_o ask_v how_o that_o chapel_n be_v call_v they_o say_v jerusalem_n then_o he_o know_v the_o time_n be_v come_v when_o he_o must_v die_v wherefore_o he_o become_v sad_a and_o confess_v his_o sin_n before_o the_o people_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o beware_v of_o ambition_n and_o craft_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o live_v holy_o then_o he_o command_v they_o to_o cut_v his_o body_n into_o piece_n and_o lay_v it_o on_o a_o cart_n and_o to_o bury_v it_o wheresoever_o the_o horse_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n will_v draw_v it_o the_o report_n be_v say_v platin._n that_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n whereby_o sinner_n may_v learn_v the_o hope_n of_o forgiveness_n if_o they_o repent_v in_o their_o life_n the_o horse_n stand_v at_o lateran_n and_o there_o he_o be_v bury_v whereas_o yet_o say_v he_o by_o the_o rattle_a of_o his_o bone_n and_o moistness_n of_o his_o tomb_n be_v portend_v the_o death_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o relate_v these_o thing_n if_o they_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n platina_n say_v he_o have_v it_o from_o mar._n polon_n vincentius_n belluacensis_n laurent_n schrader_n in_o moniman_n italiae_fw-la lib._n 2._o and_o galfrid_n and_o the_o same_o be_v write_v by_o pol._n vergil_n de_fw-mi invent_v rer_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 8._o but_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o presage_v naucler_n have_v all_o in_o generate_fw-la 34._o onuphrius_n will_v purge_v he_o of_o this_o blot_n and_o allege_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o mathematics_n in_o these_o rude_a day_n be_v take_v for_o magic_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o now-named_n author_n be_v more_o clear_a it_o be_v certain_a say_v they_o that_o he_o attain_v to_o the_o most_o secret_a thing_n of_o all_o science_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o mathematics_n but_o as_o quick_a wit_n can_v scarce_o hold_v themselves_o within_o bound_n he_o enter_v into_o necromancy_n and_o it_o be_v so_o think_v by_o many_o author_n not_o without_o great_a infamy_n by_o which_o necromancy_n he_o make_v way_n unto_o the_o papacy_n he_o be_v the_o first_o pope_n who_o cause_v to_o beat_v the_o drum_n unto_o the_o war_n in_o the_o holy_a land_n as_o they_o speak_v and_o publish_v a_o epistle_n with_o this_o inscription_n waste_v jerusalem_n unto_o the_o universal_a church_n command_v the_o sceptre_n of_o king_n gerebert_n epist_n 18._o but_o the_o expedition_n be_v not_o so_o soon_o begin_v of_o all_o the_o pope_n from_o sylvester_n the_o ii_o unto_o gregory_n the_o vii_o inclusiuè_fw-fr benno_n testify_v that_o they_o do_v exceed_v jannes_n and_o jambres_n in_o juglery_n although_o the_o height_n of_o antichristian_a pride_n be_v refer_v unto_o gregory_n the_o vii_o and_o other_o after_o he_o io._n naucler_n in_o volume_n 2._o generate_fw-la 31._o faith_n the_o pope_n of_o that_o time_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o footstep_n of_o peter_n ....._o and_o it_o be_v horror_n to_o hear_v what_o vile_a thing_n be_v do_v by_o almost_o 28._o pope_n immediate_o succeed_v after_o the_o death_n of_o sylvester_n say_v benno_n be_v strife_n among_o his_o necromance_a disciple_n each_o contend_v to_o usurp_v the_o papacy_n 2._o john_n the_o xix_o alias_o xvii_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o then_o give_v change_v the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v change_v the_o papal_a chair_n follow_v the_o sorcerer_n sylvester_n say_v bale_n
precedent_n or_o record_v of_o it_o in_o writing_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v liberty_n unto_o every_o man_n at_o his_o own_o discretion_n without_o fear_n compulsion_n or_o constraint_n to_o addict_v himself_o unto_o what_o seem_v good_a and_o commendable_a we_o know_v for_o certain_a that_o this_o diversity_n of_o fast_v be_v rife_a throughout_o the_o world_n so_o far_o socrates_n before_o he_o theodoret_n on_o rom._n 14._o at_o the_o word_n let_v every_o one_o abound_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n say_v he_o speak_v not_o general_o but_o of_o meat_n only_o he_o give_v liberty_n unto_o every_o one_o for_o this_o custom_n continue_v unto_o this_o day_n in_o the_o church_n that_o one_o abstain_v and_o another_o eat_v any_o meat_n without_o scruple_n neither_o do_v the_o one_o condemn_v the_o other_o but_o this_o law_n of_o concord_n make_v they_o the_o more_o famous_a and_o laudable_a and_o eusebius_n hist_n li._n 5._o c._n 26._o repeat_v the_o epistle_n of_o iraenaeus_fw-la unto_o victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v neither_o be_v this_o difference_n of_o the_o day_n only_o but_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o fast_v some_o think_v they_o shall_v fast_v one_o day_n some_o two_o some_o more_o some_o forty_o and_o tell_v the_o hour_n of_o the_o night_n and_o day_n neither_o begin_v this_o variety_n in_o our_o time_n but_o long_o before_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o variety_n they_o hold_v unity_n one_o with_o another_o and_o as_o yet_o we_o retain_v it_o for_o this_o variety_n of_o fast_v commend_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n they_o who_o before_o soter_n be_v bishop_n of_o that_o see_v i_o mean_v anicetus_n pius_n higin_n telesphorus_n and_o xistus_fw-la do_v not_o observe_v it_o themselves_o nor_o do_v they_o publish_v any_o such_o precedent_n unto_o posterity_n and_o though_o they_o keep_v not_o that_o custom_n they_o hold_v unity_n with_o other_o who_o come_v unto_o they_o from_o other_o church_n etc._n etc._n indeed_o caranza_n in_o summ._n council_n have_v a_o decree_n as_o of_o telesphorus_n to_o wit_n we_o decree_v that_o seven_o full_a week_n before_o easter_n all_o clerk_n that_o be_v who_o be_v call_v into_o the_o lot_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v fast_o from_o flesh_n because_o as_o the_o life_n of_o clerk_n shall_v be_v different_a from_o the_o conversation_n of_o lay_v man_n so_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o difference_n in_o their_o fast_n observe_v the_o time_n be_v here_o appoint_v seven_o full_a week_n and_o it_o be_v enjoin_v unto_o clerk_n only_o nor_o be_v any_o thing_n forbid_v but_o flesh_n but_o how_o can_v this_o decree_n stand_v with_o the_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n or_o with_o the_o practice_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o day_n of_o socrates_n in_o the_o first_o council_n at_o orleans_n and_o that_o be_v about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicen_n and_o a_o national_a be_v such_o a_o act_n concern_v priest_n only_a augustine_n in_o epist_n 86._o say_v if_o you_o ask_v my_o opinion_n in_o this_o i_o resolve_v it_o in_o my_o mind_n do_v see_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n fast_v be_v command_v but_o upon_o what_o day_n we_o shall_v fast_o or_o not_o fast_o i_o do_v not_o see_v it_o define_v by_o precept_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o his_o apostle_n so_o he_o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr bon_fw-fr oper_n li._n 2._o c._n 15._o say_v it_o seem_v a_o wondrous_a difference_n be_v among_o the_o ancient_n in_o keep_v of_o lent_n nevertheless_o pope_n gregory_n have_v a_o precedent_n for_o eusebius_n hist_n li._n 5._o c._n 16._o say_v montanus_n condemn_v marriage_n and_o eat_v of_o flesh_n and_o also_o he_o keep_v three_o fast_n yearly_a whereof_o one_o be_v two_o week_n before_o easter_n it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v mark_v that_o whatsoever_o necessity_n be_v lay_v on_o keep_v of_o lent_n yet_o a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o dispensation_n from_o his_o priest_n for_o a_o small_a sum_n of_o money_n as_o the_o papal_z chancelary_a direct_v 10._o peter_n damian_n bishop_n of_o oscia_n write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr correctione_n episcopi_fw-la note_v some_o fruit_n of_o bishop_n be_v note_v &_o papae_fw-la it_o be_v in_o catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 12._o there_o he_o sharp_o rebuke_n the_o arrogance_n of_o bishop_n which_o will_v live_v as_o they_o listen_v without_o subjection_n unto_o censure_n albeit_o the_o prophet_n david_n do_v not_o spurn_v at_o the_o admonition_n of_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n and_o samuel_n though_o suffer_v wrong_a do_v not_o refuse_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n and_o albeit_o peter_n be_v endow_v with_o such_o grace_n yet_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o censure_n of_o other_o act._n 1._o and_o when_o he_o be_v rebuke_v by_o paul_n he_o do_v not_o quarrel_n but_o take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n because_o he_o well_o understand_v it_o be_v not_o of_o malice_n but_o in_o love_n but_o say_v he_o now_o they_o say_v i_o be_o a_o bishop_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v rebuke_v by_o my_o sheep_n they_o must_v be_v silent_a whatsoever_o be_v my_o carriage_n etc._n etc._n he_o conclude_v therefore_o let_v this_o pernicious_a custom_n be_v abolish_v by_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n away_o with_o this_o deceitful_a subterfuge_n that_o he_o who_o pretend_v so_o malepert_a arrogancy_n may_v not_o enjoy_v his_o sin_n with_o immunity_n in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o udalrik_n bishop_n of_o firma_n he_o reprove_v the_o pope_n that_o they_o do_v contrary_a unto_o that_o which_o they_o be_v command_v to_o teach_v for_o they_o shall_v exhort_v all_o man_n unto_o patience_n and_o toleration_n of_o injury_n and_o forbid_v vindictive_a contention_n but_o now_o say_v he_o what_o bishop_n shall_v exhort_v other_o to_o do_v they_o themselves_o will_v not_o do_v christ_n command_v to_o forgive_v thy_o brother_n seventy_o time_n in_o a_o day_n the_o king_n may_v use_v the_o temporal_a sword_n but_o a_o priest_n shall_v use_v only_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v god_n word_n if_o for_o maintain_v the_o faith_n priest_n shall_v not_o carry_v iron_n weapon_n how_o then_o see_v we_o army_n of_o they_o rise_v against_o one_o another_o for_o earthly_a thing_n but_o so_o it_o be_v fulfil_v what_o the_o apostle_n write_v when_o they_o preach_v to_o other_o themselves_o be_v find_v to_o be_v reprobate_n 11._o about_o the_o year_n 1072._o at_o nantes_n in_o low_a bretanny_n a_o letter_n be_v time_n opposition_n against_o gregory_n vii_o and_o description_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n present_v unto_o a_o clerk_n as_o direct_v from_o hell_n in_o it_o satan_n and_o all_o that_o fry_n give_v thanks_o unto_o all_o churchman_n because_o they_o be_v not_o deficient_a unto_o his_o and_o their_o pleasure_n and_o by_o negligence_n of_o preach_v they_o send_v so_o many_o soul_n unto_o hell_n as_o no_o age_n precede_v have_v see_v so_o many_o mat._n parisi_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1072._o cardinal_n benno_n testify_v that_o none_o of_o hildebrand_n cardinal_n will_v at_o first_o subscribe_v the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o emperor_n henry_n and_o he_o have_v a_o large_a catalogue_n of_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n who_o leave_v the_o pope_n and_o will_v never_o return_v unto_o he_o so_o that_o as_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v divide_v the_o one_o party_n pretend_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o accuse_v they_o and_o their_o pope_n that_o he_o and_o they_o teach_v and_o do_v contraray_v unto_o the_o scripture_n and_o primitive_a church_n he_o add_v that_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n turban_n have_v presume_v to_o violate_v the_o decree_n of_o chalcedon_n namely_o in_o baptise_v and_o communicate_v without_o the_o church_n but_o say_v he_o as_o eusebius_n alone_o defend_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n against_o liberius_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o by_o his_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o do_v bind_v he_o with_o the_o key_n so_o &_o much_o more_o be_v hildebrand_n persevere_v in_o this_o error_n condemn_v unto_o hell_n by_o the_o depart_n of_o so_o many_o father_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o who_o accurse_v his_o heresy_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v then_o he_o have_v a_o large_a description_n of_o hildebrand_n and_o his_o disciple_n say_v let_v the_o prophet_n be_v astonish_v at_o the_o voice_n of_o peter_n and_o his_o disciple_n they_o be_v man_n in_o face_n and_o scorpion_n in_o tail_n wolf_n lurk_v in_o sheepskin_n kill_v body_n and_o dedestroy_v soul_n their_o religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o treachery_n and_o covetousness_n they_o haunt_v widow_n and_o lead_v woman_n captive_n who_o be_v load_v with_o sin_n by_o occasion_n of_o time_n they_o give_v heed_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n which_o their_o master_n hildebrand_n have_v receive_v from_o his_o master_n theophylact_v or_o pope_n benedict_n iu._n laurence_n bishop_n of_o
tribute_n and_o understand_v it_o as_o a_o indignity_n unto_o himself_o and_o his_o realm_n the_o pope_n be_v move_v with_o the_o argument_n of_o his_o purse_n and_o restore_v the_o bishop_n to_o his_o own_o and_o give_v he_o a_o palle_v such_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o those_o day_n and_o until_o this_o present_a time_n in_o germany_n france_n and_o spain_n that_o albeit_o the_o prince_n do_v principal_o name_v the_o bishop_n yet_o they_o can_v be_v admit_v unless_o they_o go_v to_o rome_n for_o their_o palle_v which_o custom_n be_v a_o burden_n to_o the_o nation_n and_o binge_v no_o small_a gain_n to_o rome_n cumi_fw-la ventura_n in_o thes_n polit._n discepta_fw-la de_fw-fr urbe_fw-la rom._n 8._o in_o this_o century_n as_o reckon_v sir_n hen._n spelman_n in_o council_n be_v compile_v law_n ecclesiastical_a law_n the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o aelfrick_n unto_o wulfin_n bishop_n among_o which_o be_v these_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o priest_n i_o will_v not_o suffer_v your_o negligence_n in_o your_o ministry_n but_o in_o truth_n i_o tell_v you_o what_o be_v ordain_v for_o priest_n christ_n himself_o have_v give_v a_o example_n of_o christian_a institution_n and_o purity_n of_o life_n or_o chastity_n therefore_o all_o who_o will_v walk_v with_o he_o in_o his_o way_n have_v forsake_v all_o earthly_a thing_n not_o look_v unto_o their_o wife_n wherefore_o he_o say_v in_o his_o gospel_n who_o hate_v not_o his_o wife_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v my_o disciple_n c._n ii_o after_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o departure_n of_o his_o venerable_a apostle_n so_o great_a a_o persecution_n be_v raise_v on_o earth_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n can_v not_o meet_v in_o a_o synod_n because_o the_o heathen_n lay_v in_o wait_n for_o they_o until_o constantine_n have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o earth_n become_v a_o christian_n in_o many_o word_n there_o be_v condemn_v the_o marriage_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o also_o second_o marriage_n and_o then_o c._n x._o it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v seven_o degree_n in_o the_o church_n ostiarius_n lector_fw-la exorcista_fw-la acoluthus_n subdiaconus_a diaconus_fw-la presbyter_n c._n xvii_o presbyter_n be_v the_o missal_n priest_n or_o elder_a not_o for_o his_o age_n but_o ancient_a wisdom_n it_o be_v his_o office_n to_o consecrate_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o sacrament_n even_o as_o our_o saviour_n have_v ordain_v he_o shall_v lead_v the_o people_n into_o the_o faith_n both_o by_o preach_v and_o exercise_v the_o holy_a ministry_n chaste_o be_v a_o pattern_n unto_o christian_n and_o not_o live_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o laic_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n but_o that_o a_o bishop_n be_v appoint_v to_o give_v ordination_n and_o to_o visit_v or_o have_v care_n of_o thing_n belong_v unto_o god_n which_o may_v not_o be_v permit_v unto_o the_o multitude_n they_o have_v both_o the_o same_o order_n albeit_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o bishop_n be_v more_o worthy_a c._n xviii_o there_o be_v no_o other_o order_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n but_o these_o seven_o monk_n and_o abbot_n be_v of_o another_o sort_n and_o not_o to_o be_v reckon_v with_o they_o nor_o have_v they_o the_o name_n of_o any_o order_n and_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v call_v holy_a order_n and_o they_o lead_v the_o soul_n of_o their_o priest_n unto_o blessedness_n if_o they_o abide_v holy_a c._n xxiii_o a_o presbyter_n or_o mass-priest_n shall_v on_o sunday_n and_o mass-day_n teach_v the_o people_n in_o english_a the_o understanding_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o creed_n and_o that_o they_o learn_v the_o creed_n or_o christian_a confession_n by_o heart_n as_o the_o lord_n command_v by_o the_o prophet_n say_v they_o be_v dumb_a dog_n that_o can_v bark_v they_o must_v therefore_o bark_v and_o exhort_v the_o people_n lest_o we_o destroy_v they_o for_o want_n of_o teach_v c._n xxvii_o a_o presbyter_n shall_v not_o sell_v his_o ministry_n c._n xxviii_o nor_o pass_v from_o one_o church_n to_o another_o for_o gain_v c._n xxix_o nor_o be_v a_o drunkard_n c._n xxx_o nor_o a_o merchant_n nor_o a_o lawyer_n nor_o bear_v weapon_n the_o same_o author_n have_v a_o letter_n of_o pope_n nicolaus_n unto_o king_n edward_n call_v the_o confessor_n where_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n for_o their_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n which_o they_o have_v give_v to_o bless_a peter_n have_v flourish_v in_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o by_o his_o defence_n they_o have_v obtain_v glorious_a triumph_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o which_o bless_a apostle_n the_o almighty_a god_n may_v bring_v to_o pass_v your_o desire_n and_o confirm_v unto_o you_o the_o empire_n of_o your_o father_n kingdom_n we_o commit_v unto_o you_o and_o the_o king_n your_o successor_n the_o advocation_n and_o maintain_v of_o that_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o abbey_n of_o westminster_n that_o edward_n have_v rebuilded_n and_o enlarge_v and_o of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o all_o england_n that_o in_o our_o place_n vice_n nostra_fw-la note_v here_o he_o will_v have_v the_o king_n to_o be_v his_o vicar_n and_o not_o alone_o but_o you_o with_o the_o advice_n of_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n may_v ordain_v every_o where_o thing_n that_o be_v just_a know_v that_o for_o these_o thing_n you_o shall_v receive_v reward_n from_o he_o who_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n shall_v have_v no_o end_n the_o same_o author_n page_n 571._o say_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o maccabaeus_n king_n of_o scot_n note_v hear_v a_o error_n in_o the_o name_n maccabaeus_n for_o macbeth_n of_o who_o buchanan_n say_v lib._n 7._o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o make_v good_a law_n both_o many_o and_o useful_a which_o now_o be_v not_o know_v or_o be_v neglect_v take_v out_o of_o his_o register_n be_v these_o one_o who_o be_v enter_v into_o order_n call_v thou_o not_o before_o a_o profane_a judge_n if_o he_o be_v summon_v and_o appear_v do_v not_o thou_o judge_v he_o but_o remit_v he_o unto_o the_o holy_a ruler_n give_v willing_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o ground_n unto_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o worship_n god_n continual_o with_o vow_n and_o oblation_n who_o be_v accurse_v shall_v contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o whole_a year_n and_o shall_v not_o reconcile_v himself_o let_v he_o be_v account_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o if_o he_o continue_v two_o year_n in_o that_o contumacy_n let_v he_o be_v forfault_v of_o all_o his_o good_n if_o any_o shall_v accompany_v as_o a_o servant_n another_o man_n by_o who_o charge_n he_o be_v not_o daily_o sustain_v either_o unto_o the_o church_n or_o public_a convention_n or_o a_o market_n let_v he_o want_v the_o head_n boet._n hist_o li._n 12._o have_v these_o and_o other_o of_o his_o civil_a law_n 9_o anselm_n a_o italian_a be_v transport_v against_o his_o will_n as_o say_v m._n fox_n in_o act._n from_o the_o abbey_n becheloin_v in_o normandy_n unto_o the_o see_v of_o canterbury_n this_o be_v he_o who_o say_v he_o have_v rather_o be_v in_o hell_n without_o sin_n then_o in_o heaven_n with_o sin_n a_o man_n of_o special_a note_n in_o his_o time_n for_o as_o gul._n malmesbu_n de_fw-fr gest_n anglo_n pontiff_n li._n 1._o report_v when_o the_o greek_n dispute_v at_o barri_n against_o pope_n urban_n concern_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o pope_n cry_v aloud_o father_n and_o master_n anselm_n where_o be_v you_o come_v now_o and_o defend_v your_o mother_n the_o church_n and_o when_o they_o bring_v he_o into_o presence_n urban_n say_v let_v we_o take_v he_o into_o our_o world_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o other_o world_n he_o write_v many_o book_n xi_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o century_n xi_o which_o to_o this_o day_n be_v common_o in_o hand_n and_o declare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v then_o profess_v in_o the_o general_n be_v a_o remarkable_a passage_n in_o lib._n 1._o epist_n 68_o according_a to_o the_o edition_n of_o the_o jesuit_n the._n raynaud_n direct_v unto_o lanfranc_n say_v concern_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v say_v in_o that_o little_a book_n you_o do_v by_o a_o wise_a and_o wholesome_a advice_n admonish_v to_o consider_v more_o exact_o in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o to_o confer_v with_o the_o learned_a in_o their_o holy_a book_n and_o where_o reason_n fail_v to_o confirm_v they_o by_o divine_a authority_n i_o have_v do_v so_o both_o before_o and_o since_o i_o have_v receive_v your_o fatherly_a and_o love_a admonition_n so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v for_o that_o be_v my_o intention_n through_o all_o that_o disputation_n to_o assert_v nothing_o at_o all_o but_o what_o i_o see_v undoubting_o may_v be_v
consider_v most_o what_o thou_o be_v most_o to_o wit_n a_o man_n even_o as_o thou_o be_v bear_v and_o thou_o must_v consider_v not_o only_a quid_fw-la sed_fw-la qualis_fw-la natus_fw-la what_o but_o what_o a_o one_o thou_o be_v bear_v take_v away_o therefore_o therefore_o in_o thy_o predication_n the_o cover_n of_o these_o leaf_n which_o hide_v the_o shame_n and_o heal_v not_o the_o wound_n blot_v away_o the_o false_a colour_n of_o fade_a honour_n and_o the_o glance_n of_o counterfeit_a glory_n that_o thou_o may_v naked_o consider_v thyself_o naked_a because_o thou_o come_v naked_a out_o of_o thy_o mother_n womb_n be_v thou_o bear_v with_o a_o mitre_n or_o glance_v with_o jewel_n or_o shine_v with_o silk_n or_o crown_v with_o feather_n or_o burden_a with_o metal_n if_o thou_o blow_v with_o thy_o meditation_n these_o thing_n as_o a_o morning_n cloud_n thou_o will_v see_v thyself_o a_o naked_a man_n poor_a wretched_a miserable_a lament_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n ashamed_a that_o thou_o be_v naked_a weep_v that_o thou_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o woman_n and_o therefore_o with_o guiltiness_n and_o therefore_o with_o fear_n and_o fill_v with_o misery_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n for_o what_o calamity_n want_v he_o who_o be_v bear_v in_o sin_n a_o frail_a body_n and_o barren_a soul_n a_o modest_a man_n will_v moderate_v his_o care_n abstain_v from_o superfluity_n and_o not_o fail_v in_o thing_n necessary_a a_o just_a man_n will_v not_o presume_v on_o thing_n high_a than_o himself_o but_o will_v say_v with_o that_o just_a man_n if_o i_o be_v just_a i_o will_v not_o lift_v up_o my_o head_n therefore_o in_o thy_o meditation_n walk_v wary_o that_o thou_o neither_o ascribe_v unto_o thou_o more_o then_o enough_o nor_o deny_v more_o than_o be_v just_a and_o thou_o ascribe_v unto_o thyself_o more_o than_o truth_n not_o only_o by_o arrogate_a any_o good_a thou_o have_v not_o but_o by_o ascribe_v what_o thou_o have_v etc._n etc._n in_o lib._n 3._o he_o say_v thy_o father_n be_v ordain_v to_o overcome_v not_o some_o nation_n but_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o go_v into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o they_o sell_v their_o coat_n and_o buy_v sword_n to_o wit_n zealous_a eloquence_n and_o a_o vehement_a spirit_n weapon_n powerful_a through_o god_n whither_o go_v those_o famous_a conqueror_n occumbebant_fw-la non_fw-la succumbebant_fw-la these_o mighty_a warrior_n do_v die_v but_o never_o give_v over_o they_o triumph_v when_o they_o be_v dead_a thou_o have_v succeed_v into_o their_o inheritance_n so_o thou_o be_v the_o heir_n and_o the_o world_n be_v thy_o inheritance_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v serious_o consider_v how_o this_o inheritance_n concern_v thou_o and_o how_o it_o do_v concern_v they_o for_o i_o believe_v not_o every_o way_n yet_o in_o some_o way_n i_o think_v a_o dispensation_n be_v commit_v unto_o thou_o and_o possession_n be_v not_o give_v thou_o if_o thou_o will_v usurp_v this_o too_o he_o contradict_v thou_o who_o say_v the_o earth_n be_v ●●ine_a and_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o thou_o be_v not_o he_o of_o who_o the_o prophet_n say_v all_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v his_o possession_n this_o be_v christ_n to_o who_o the_o possession_n belong_v by_o right_a of_o creation_n merit_n of_o redemption_n and_o by_o gift_n of_o the_o father_n what_o say_v thou_o will_v thou_o deny_v i_o power_n and_o forbid_v i_o to_o rule_v yea_o plain_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o power_n who_o have_v care_n praesis_fw-la ut_fw-la prosis_fw-la so_o govern_v that_o thou_o do_v good_a so_o govern_v as_o a_o faithful_a and_o wise_a servant_n who_o the_o lord_n have_v set_v over_o his_o house_n unto_o what_o to_o give_v they_o food_n in_o season_n that_o be_v to_o steward_n and_o not_o to_o command_v do_v this_o and_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n affect_v not_o to_o rule_v over_o man_n lest_o unrighteousness_n rule_v over_o thou_o i_o be_o afraid_a for_o no_o poison_n unto_o thou_o and_o no_o sword_n more_o than_o this_o desire_n of_o rule_v certain_o albeit_o thou_o think_v much_o of_o thyself_o yet_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o much_o deceive_v think_v that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v more_o than_o the_o great_a apostle_n remember_v therefore_o that_o word_n i_o be_o debtor_n to_o the_o wise_a and_o to_o the_o unwise_a and_o if_o thou_o think_v that_o belong_v to_o thou_o remember_v also_o that_o the_o grievous_a name_n of_o a_o debtor_n agree_v to_o a_o servant_n rather_o than_o to_o a_o ruler_n therefore_o if_o thou_o acknowledge_v thyself_o a_o debtor_n to_o the_o wise_a and_o unwise_a thou_o must_v earnest_o consider_v how_o both_o they_o who_o be_v not_o wise_a may_v be_v wise_a &_o they_o who_o be_v wise_a become_v not_o unwise_a and_o how_o they_o who_o be_v become_v unwise_a may_v grow_v wise_a again_o but_o no_o kind_n of_o foolishness_n be_v worse_a than_o infidelity_n therefore_o thou_o be_v a_o debtor_n to_o infidel_n jew_n greek_n and_o gentile_n therefore_o it_o shall_v be_v thy_o work_n that_o infidel_n may_v be_v bring_v unto_o the_o faith_n the_o convert_v be_v not_o turn_v away_o and_o who_o be_v turn_v away_o may_v return_v who_o be_v pervert_v may_v be_v make_v straight_o according_a to_o rectitude_n and_o the_o subvert_a may_v be_v recall_v unto_o the_o truth_n the_o subverter_n may_v be_v convince_v with_o unvincible_a reason_n to_o the_o end_n that_o themselves_o may_v be_v amend_v if_o possible_a or_o if_o not_o they_o may_v not_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o subvert_v other_o albeit_o the_o apostle_n excuse_v thou_o concern_v the_o jew_n see_v they_o have_v a_o term_n which_o can_v be_v prevent_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n must_v come_v in_o but_o what_o say_v thou_o of_o the_o gentile_n themselves_o yea_o what_o answer_v thy_o consideration_n unto_o this_o question_n think_v thou_o that_o the_o father_n have_v set_v bound_n unto_o the_o gospel_n and_o suspend_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n while_o infidelity_n continue_v by_o what_o reason_n think_v we_o have_v the_o word_n which_o do_v run_v so_o swift_o come_v to_o a_o stand_v who_o do_v first_o hinder_v the_o run_n of_o salvation_n possible_o some_o cause_n which_o we_o know_v not_o or_o necessity_n may_v hinder_v they_o but_o what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o dissemble_v by_o what_o confidence_n or_o what_o conscience_n do_v we_o not_o so_o much_o as_o tender_a christ_n unto_o they_o which_o have_v he_o not_o do_v we_o withhold_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o unrighteousness_n but_o certain_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v come_v in_o sometime_o do_v we_o expect_v that_o faith_n shall_v fall_v upon_o they_o who_o have_v ever_o believe_v by_o chance_n how_o shall_v they_o believe_v without_o a_o preacher_n i_o add_v concern_v the_o pertinacy_n of_o the_o greek_n who_o be_v with_o we_o and_o not_o with_o we_o join_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o sever_v in_o peace_n albeit_o in_o the_o faith_n they_o do_v halt_v from_o the_o right_a path_n and_o also_o of_o heresy_n which_o spread_v quiet_o every_o where_n almost_o note_v among_o some_o do_v rage_n open_o for_o it_o devour_v quick_o the_o babe_n of_o the_o church_n every_o where_o and_o open_o you_o ask_v where_o be_v this_o you_o which_v visit_v the_o south_n so_o oft_o behold_v they_o know_v and_o can_v tell_v thou_o they_o go_v and_o return_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o or_o pass_v by_o they_o but_o as_o yet_o we_o have_v not_o hear_v what_o good_a they_o do_v among_o they_o and_o possible_o we_o have_v hear_v if_o they_o have_v not_o make_v more_o account_n of_o spanish_a gold_n then_o of_o man_n soul_n it_o be_v thy_o duty_n to_o provide_v a_o remedy_n unto_o this_o malady_n but_o there_o be_v a_o foolishness_n which_o in_o these_o day_n have_v almost_o make_v foolish_a even_o the_o wisdom_n of_o faith_n note_n how_n have_v this_o poison_n envenom_v almost_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o while_o even_o in_o she_o each_o one_o seek_v our_o own_o thing_n it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o by_o mutual_a envy_v and_o contention_n we_o be_v take_v up_o with_o hatred_n encourage_v to_o injury_n ready_a unto_o strise_n use_v cavillation_n unto_o guile_n carry_v to_o slander_n break_v out_o into_o curse_n be_v oppress_v by_o the_o mighty_a and_o do_v oppress_v the_o weak_a how_o worthy_o and_o laudable_o may_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n be_v exercise_v against_o so_o pestilentious_a a_o kind_n of_o foolishness_n which_o thou_o see_v to_o possess_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n alas_o ambition_n the_o cross_n of_o the_o ambitious_a how_o do_v thou_o vex_v all_o man_n and_o please_v all_o man_n nothing_o do_v vex_v man_n more_o bitter_o nothing_o disturb_v they_o with_o more_o turmoil_n and_o nevertheless_o nothing_o be_v
eight_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o abovenamed_a article_n of_o aen._n silvius_n and_o naucler_n that_o the_o seven_o be_v a_o calumny_n appear_v by_o that_o they_o do_v condemn_v the_o beg_n of_o friar_n and_o freher_n pag._n 231._o say_v their_o teacher_n be_v weaver_n and_o tailor_n they_o heap_v not_o up_o riches_n but_o be_v content_a with_o necessary_n and_o pag._n 253._o he_o have_v a_o answer_n of_o they_o unto_o augustin_n olomucen_n where_o they_o say_v we_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o our_o priest_n for_o that_o they_o purchase_v their_o live_n by_o their_o handy_a work_n because_o so_o the_o doctrine_n and_o apostolical_a example_n teach_v we_o etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o their_o condition_n do_v so_o require_v and_o they_o do_v judge_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o reproach_n for_o christ_n be_v great_a riches_n than_o the_o treasure_n of_o egypt_n it_o be_v object_v also_o that_o peter_n waldo_n be_v a_o layman_n and_o so_o want_v a_o call_n or_o order_n he_o can_v not_o confer_v it_o on_o other_o but_o matth._n parisiensis_fw-la ad_fw-la an._n 1223._o testify_v that_o many_o bishop_n turn_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o they_o have_v a_o archbishop_n bartholomew_n who_o consecrate_v other_o bishop_n and_o minister_n so_o albeit_o at_o the_o first_o the_o man_n begin_v to_o teach_v his_o own_o family_n only_o yet_o afterward_o their_o number_n increase_v they_o want_v not_o lawful_a teacher_n some_o object_n that_o they_o refuse_v baptism_n unto_o infant_n and_o other_o say_v they_o despise_v the_o old_a testament_n but_o those_o be_v contrary_a unto_o their_o confession_n it_o may_v also_o be_v object_v that_o in_o their_o confession_n they_o acknowledge_v seven_o sacrament_n but_o consider_v the_o description_n and_o use_n of_o those_o which_o they_o call_v sacrament_n and_o the_o difference_n shall_v be_v find_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n all_o those_o thing_n be_v well_o weigh_v we_o need_v not_o doubt_v to_o join_v hand_n with_o the_o waldenses_n as_o with_o our_o elder_a brethren_n nor_o can_v the_o papist_n deny_v that_o our_o church_n be_v old_a than_o luther_n i_o say_v with_o brethren_n not_o as_o father_n because_o their_o doctrine_n and_o we_o be_v not_o original_o from_o they_o but_o from_o christ_n and_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n 19_o it_o remain_v to_o show_v how_o the_o waldenses_n be_v persecute_v in_o the_o waldenses_n the_o persecution_n of_o the_o waldenses_n year_n 1163._o ecbert_n a_o monk_n have_v dispute_v at_o colein_n august_n 2._o with_o arnold_n marsilius_n and_o theodorick_n who_o have_v come_v from_o flanders_n because_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v arnold_n with_o seven_o man_n and_o two_o woman_n be_v burn_v the_o next_o day_n when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o fire_n arnold_n be_v hear_v to_o say_v unto_o his_o brethren_n be_v constant_a in_o the_o faith_n ex_fw-la caesari_n heisterb_fw-ge lib._n 5._o cap._n 19_o theodorick_n escape_v at_o that_o time_n but_o afterward_o he_o with_o some_o other_o be_v burn_v at_o binna_n the_o same_o year_n pope_n alexander_n iii_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o tower_n accurse_v they_o all_o without_o any_o special_a mention_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o he_o accurse_v all_o that_o buy_v or_o sell_v with_o they_o ann._n 1170._o the_o same_o pope_n send_v a_o cardinal_n unto_o tolouse_n to_o persecute_v they_o there_o at_o that_o time_n two_o leave_v their_o profession_n and_o he_o give_v they_o place_n of_o canon_n hovedan_n annal._n par_fw-fr 2._o testify_v that_o oliverius_n and_o some_o other_o which_o be_v call_v good_a man_n be_v bring_v into_o inquisition_n in_o the_o province_n of_o tolouse_n by_o peter_n archbishop_n of_o narbon_n girald_n albien_fw-fr and_o other_o all_o the_o people_n behold_v the_o spectacle_n their_o preacher_n be_v call_v in_o lombardy_n consolati_fw-la in_o germany_n and_o france_n boni_fw-la homines_fw-la an._n 1178._o peter_n cardinal_n of_o s._n chysogono_n be_v send_v again_o to_o tolouse_n where_o he_o and_o lewes_n king_n of_o france_n and_z henry_n king_n of_o england_n against_o the_o albigenses_n but_o there_o come_v little_a or_o no_o speed_n continuator_fw-la rober._n monten_a and_o from_o thence_o they_o send_v reginald_n bishop_n of_o bathonien_n and_o henry_n abbot_n of_o clareval_n in_o the_o diocy_n of_o albia_n in_o the_o legate_n name_n to_o charge_n roger_n lord_n of_o that_o land_n to_o purge_v his_o territory_n from_o those_o heretic_n because_o he_o will_v not_o give_v obedience_n nor_o his_o presence_n they_o accuse_v he_o rog._n hou._n lo._n cit_fw-la the_o next_o year_n the_o same_o pope_n in_o a_o council_n at_o rome_n accurse_v they_o all_o the_o decree_n be_v in_o tom._n 4._o council_n print_a at_o rome_n neither_o be_v any_o mention_n of_o their_o error_n in_o it_o after_o two_o year_n that_o abbot_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o albanen_n and_o a_o cardinal_n be_v send_v into_o gascony_n but_o in_o vain_a say_v altisiod_n cronol_n ad_fw-la an._n 1181._o for_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o poor_a man_n have_v liberty_n they_o return_v unto_o their_o profession_n an._n 1183._o in_o the_o village_n bituricen_n 5000._o be_v kill_v in_o one_o day_n who_o they_o call_v catharelli_n or_o more_o contemptuous_o ruptarii_fw-la guil._n armorica_n in_o gestis_fw-la philippi_n frumald_n bishop_n of_o atrebat_fw-la imprison_v adam_n and_o radulph_n with_o other_o two_o because_o he_o be_v sick_a william_n bishop_n of_o rheims_n come_v thither_o with_o the_o same_o philip_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v burn_v the_o next_o pope_n lucius_n in_o a_o council_n at_o verona_n where_o the_o emperor_n frederik_n be_v present_a accurse_a all_o the_o waldenses_n so_o do_v urban_n iii_o and_o clemens_n iii_o as_o witness_v andr._n favin_n in_o hist_n navar._n lib._n 5._o and_o we_o will_v hear_v more_o of_o their_o persecution_n hereafter_o ja._n vsser_n in_o eccless_a statu_fw-la cap._n 8_o &_o 10._o 20._o radevic_n a_o canon_n frise_v write_v two_o book_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n i._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 10._o he_o speak_v of_o pope_n adrian_n say_v let_v we_o hear_v the_o beast_n that_o have_v a_o face_n like_o a_o lamb_n and_o speak_v as_o a_o dragon_n 21._o william_n archbishop_n of_o senon_n write_v unto_o pope_n alexander_n iii_o thus_o let_v your_o excellency_n most_o holy_a father_n hear_v patient_o what_o we_o say_v for_o our_o soul_n be_v in_o bitterness_n and_o so_o be_v your_o devote_a son_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n of_o france_n how_o all_o the_o church_n of_o france_n be_v trouble_v with_o scandal_n flow_v in_o time_n of_o your_o apostleship_n from_o the_o apostolical_a see_v see_v as_o our_o nation_n say_v satan_n be_v let_v loose_a there_o to_o the_o ruin_n of_o all_o the_o church_n there_o christ_n be_v crucify_v again_o and_o manifest_o sacrilegious_a person_n and_o murderer_n go_v free_a baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la an._n 1170._o ex_fw-la manuscrip_n vatic_n at_o the_o same_o time_n stephan_n tronac_n in_o epist_n 86._o ad_fw-la joh._n pictavi_n which_o be_v print_v with_o the_o epistle_n of_o gerebert_n say_v i_o know_v not_o father_n whether_o the_o 1000_o year_n be_v expire_v when_o satan_n shall_v be_v loose_v but_o we_o see_v his_o servant_n so_o loose_a that_o they_o bind_v god_n servant_n vsser_n lib._n cit_fw-la cap._n 3._o 22._o peter_n a_o parisian_a monk_n be_v of_o great_a age_n die_v ann._n 1167._o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la abbreviat_fw-la he_o commend_v god_n word_n and_o tax_v the_o idleness_n and_o impiety_n of_o priest_n the_o curiosity_n of_o schoolman_n the_o multitude_n and_o abuse_n of_o mass_n the_o multitude_n of_o man_n tradition_n whereby_o the_o precept_n of_o god_n be_v make_v void_a he_o call_v indulgence_n a_o godly_a deceit_n he_o show_v how_o lucas_n a_o bishop_n of_o hungary_n have_v excommunicate_v a_o layman_n for_o a_o crime_n the_o man_n run_v to_o pope_n alexander_n iii_o and_o obtain_v absolution_n for_o money_n but_o the_o bishop_n regard_v not_o the_o pope_n threaten_n but_o do_v excommunicate_v the_o man_n again_o and_o the_o three_o time_n for_o his_o obstinacy_n wherefore_o the_o pope_n do_v excommunicate_v the_o bishop_n but_o lucas_n despise_v his_o curse_n as_o unjust_a and_o never_o seek_v absolution_n nevertheless_o this_o bishop_n be_v high_o account_v after_o his_o death_n and_o be_v call_v st._n lucas_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la 23._o bernard_n clunicen_n about_o that_o time_n write_v a_o large_a satyr_n not_o spare_v the_o pope_n nor_o cardinal_n of_o which_o be_v here_o some_o passage_n ex_fw-la catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 14._o pontificalia_fw-la corda_fw-la carentia_fw-la cord_n probavit_fw-la pontificalia_fw-la corda_fw-la pecunia_fw-la contenebravit_fw-la pontificum_fw-la status_fw-la antè_fw-la fuit_fw-la ratus_fw-la integer_fw-la antè_fw-la ille_fw-la statum_fw-la dabat_fw-la ordine_fw-la nunc_fw-la labat_fw-la ille_fw-la labante_fw-la qui_fw-la super_fw-la hoc_fw-la mare_fw-la debuerat_fw-la dare_v se_fw-la quasi_fw-la
erroneous_o name_v one_o for_o another_o often_o etc._n etc._n by_o this_o ingenuous_a testimony_n of_o the_o printer_n we_o may_v see_v what_o account_n they_o make_v now_o of_o their_o ancient_a master_n and_o see_v these_o book_n have_v be_v so_o oft_o change_v little_a credit_n can_v be_v give_v to_o any_o of_o their_o late_a edition_n and_o three_o that_o even_o the_o master_n himself_o have_v not_o write_v sound_o according_a to_o the_o father_n which_o he_o cit_v the_o edition_n of_o lombard_n at_o paris_n an._n 1550._o have_v in_o the_o end_n a_o catalogue_n of_o these_o which_o they_o call_v his_o error_n in_o quibus_fw-la magister_fw-la non_fw-la tenetur_fw-la i_o will_v show_v some_o instance_n in_o the_o edition_n at_o lovane_n an._n 1568._o lib._n 4._o dist_n 2._o f._n they_o who_o have_v not_o hope_v in_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n and_o do_v believe_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o baptize_v thereafter_o but_o the_o apostle_n lay_v hand_n on_o they_o and_o then_o they_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o on_o the_o margint_n it_o be_v erronea_fw-la magistri_fw-la opinio_fw-la dist_n 5._o c._n christ_n may_v give_v unto_o they_o his_fw-la disciple_n power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n yet_o not_o the_o same_o power_n that_o he_o himself_o have_v but_o a_o create_a power_n by_o which_o a_o servant_n may_v forgive_v sin_n yet_o not_o as_o the_o author_n of_o remission_n but_o as_o a_o servant_n and_o yet_o not_o without_o god_n the_o author_n on_o the_o margin_n it_o be_v add_v hic_fw-la magister_fw-la non_fw-la recipitur_fw-la dist_n 13._o a._n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o eat_v by_o the_o brute_n beast_n albeit_o it_o seem_v so_o what_o then_o do_v a_o mouse_n take_v and_o eat_v god_n know_v in_o the_o margin_n it_o be_v say_v non_fw-la probatur_fw-la haec_fw-la magistri_fw-la opinio_fw-la dist_n 17._o b._n it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v that_o without_o confession_n of_o the_o mouth_n and_o pay_v outward_a punishment_n sin_n be_v forgive_v upon_o contrition_n and_o humility_n of_o the_o heart_n in_o the_o magin_v it_o be_v add_v non_fw-la rectè_fw-la hic_fw-la sentit_fw-la magister_fw-la dist_n 18._o f._n unto_o the_o priest_n he_o give_v power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v that_o be_v of_o show_v that_o they_o be_v bind_v or_o loose_v in_o the_o margin_n it_o be_v gravis_fw-la magistri_fw-la lapsus_fw-la in_o many_o other_o particular_n though_o they_o have_v not_o put_v such_o a_o censure_n on_o he_o he_o be_v no_o less_o adversary_n unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o rome_n now_o as_o lib._n 1._o dist_n 1._o a._n let_v the_o diligent_a and_o modest_a speculation_n of_o divine_n take_v heed_n to_o hold_v the_o divine_a scripture_n as_o the_o prescribe_a form_n in_o doctrine_n dist_n 2._o c._n as_o augustin_n lib._n the_o trini_z teach_v we_o must_v first_o show_v whether_o faith_n hold_v out_o so_o according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o then_o against_o babble_a disputer_n which_o be_v more_o proud_a than_o capable_a use_v catholic_a reason_n and_o fit_a similitude_n for_o defence_n and_o assert_v the_o faith_n that_o so_o satisfy_v curiosity_n we_o may_v the_o more_o full_o instruct_v the_o modest_a or_o if_o they_o can_v find_v the_o truth_n which_o they_o seek_v they_o may_v complain_v of_o their_o own_o mind_n rather_o than_o of_o the_o truth_n or_o of_o our_o assertion_n d._n therefore_o let_v we_o propound_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n dist_n 40._o d._n see_v predestination_n be_v the_o preparation_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v divine_a election_n whereby_o he_o have_v choose_v who_o he_o will_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v on_o the_o other_o side_n reprobation_n must_v be_v understand_v the_o foreknowledge_n of_o the_o iniquity_n of_o some_o and_o the_o preparation_n of_o their_o damnation_n for_o as_o the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n be_v that_o grace_n whereby_o now_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o help_v to_o live_v well_o and_o to_o continue_v in_o good_a and_o whereby_o we_o be_v bless_v in_o the_o future_a so_o the_o reprobation_n of_o god_n whereby_o from_o eternity_n by_o not_o elect_v he_o have_v reject_v some_o be_v consider_v in_o two_o particular_n whereof_o the_o one_o he_o forsee_v and_o prepare_v not_o that_o be_v iniquity_n the_o other_o he_o forsee_v and_o prepare_v that_o be_v everlasting_a punishment_n whence_o augustin_n ad_fw-la prosp_n &_o hilar._n say_v this_o rule_n must_v be_v hold_v without_o waver_v that_o sinner_n be_v foreknow_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o not_o prepare_v but_o that_o the_o punishment_n be_v prepare_v for_o god_n in_o his_o presence_n as_o augustin_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi persevere_v have_v prepare_v his_o good_a thing_n unto_o who_o he_o will_v and_o unto_o whosoever_o he_o give_v certain_o he_o foresee_v that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o dist_n 41._o a._n if_o we_o seek_v the_o merit_n of_o obduration_n and_o mercy_n we_o find_v the_o merit_n of_o obduration_n but_o we_o find_v not_o the_o merit_n of_o mercy_n because_o there_o be_v no_o merit_n of_o mercy_n lest_o grace_n be_v make_v nothing_o if_o it_o be_v not_o give_v free_o but_o render_v unto_o merit_n so_o he_o show_v mercy_n according_a to_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v free_o but_o he_o harden_v according_a to_o judgement_n which_o be_v render_v unto_o merit_n whence_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o as_o god_n reprobation_n be_v that_o he_o will_v not_o show_v mercy_n so_o god_n obduration_n be_v that_o he_o show_v not_o mercy_n so_o that_o not_o any_o thing_n proceed_v from_o he_o whereby_o a_o man_n be_v make_v worse_o but_o only_o it_o be_v not_o give_v whereby_o he_o may_v be_v better_o hence_o it_o be_v clear_a say_v he_o what_o the_o apostle_n understand_v by_o mercy_n and_o harden_v and_o because_o mercy_n admit_v not_o merit_n but_o obduration_n be_v not_o without_o merit_n and_o by_o the_o word_n mercy_n here_o be_v understand_v predestination_n and_o especial_o the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n but_o by_o the_o word_n obduration_n be_v not_o mean_v the_o eternal_a reprobation_n of_o god_n because_o there_o be_v no_o merit_n thereof_o but_o the_o privation_n or_o refuse_v of_o grace_n which_o be_v some_o way_n the_o effect_n of_o reprobation_n yet_o sometime_o reprobation_n be_v take_v for_o obduration_n as_o predestination_n for_o its_o effect_n which_o be_v grace_n give_v for_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n therefore_o see_v there_o be_v no_o merit_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v to_o man_n for_o justification_n and_o far_o less_o of_o predestination_n itself_o whereby_o god_n have_v from_o eternity_n choose_v who_o he_o will_v can_v there_o be_v any_o merit_n so_o nor_o of_o reprobation_n whereby_o from_o eternity_n he_o foresee_v that_o some_o will_v be_v evil_a and_o be_v condemn_v as_o he_o do_v choose_v jacob_n and_o deny_v esau_n which_o be_v not_o for_o their_o merit_n which_o they_o have_v then_o because_o they_o have_v none_o because_o themselves_o be_v not_o nor_o for_o the_o future_a merit_n which_o he_o can_v foresee_v do_v he_o either_o choose_v the_o one_o or_o refuse_v the_o other_o in_o the_o next_o section_n he_o show_v how_o augustin_n once_o think_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v jacob_n because_o he_o foresee_v that_o jacob_n will_v be_v such_o and_o therefore_o augustin_n recant_v that_o error_n and_o he_o conclude_v the_o section_n thus_o augustin_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la sanctor_n say_v not_o because_o he_o foresee_v that_o we_o will_v be_v such_o do_v he_o therefore_o choose_v but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v such_o by_o the_o very_a election_n of_o his_o grace_n whereby_o he_o have_v accept_v we_o in_o his_o beloved_a son_n dist_n 46._o b._n unto_o that_o objection_n from_o matth._n 23._o 37._o he_o answer_v that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v so_o as_o if_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v gather_v the_o child_n and_o it_o be_v not_o do_v what_o he_o will_v because_o jerusalem_n will_v not_o but_o rather_o that_o she_o will_v not_o have_v her_o child_n gather_v by_o he_o and_o yet_o against_o she_o will_v he_o gather_v her_o child_n even_o all_o who_o he_o will_v because_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n there_o be_v not_o some_o thing_n that_o he_o will_v and_z do_v and_o some_o thing_n that_o he_o will_v and_o do_v not_o but_o all_o whatsoever_o he_o will_v he_o have_v do_v and_o therefore_o the_o meaning_n be_v whosoever_o i_o have_v gather_v by_o my_o ever_o efficacious_a will_n i_o do_v against_o thy_o will_n behold_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o these_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o contrary_a unto_o that_o be_v say_v lib._n 2._o dist_n 25._o g._n in_o man_n may_v be_v observe_v four_o estate_n of_o freewill_n for_o before_o
fear_v laese-majesty_n lest_o it_o seem_v that_o i_o deserve_v the_o gibbet_n as_o open_v my_o mouth_n against_o the_o heaven_n nevertheless_o because_o uvido_z cardinal_n of_o st._n potentiana_n bear_v witness_n with_o the_o people_n i_o dare_v not_o altogether_o contradict_v they_o for_o he_o say_v there_o be_v a_o root_n of_o duplicity_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o i_o do_v ingenuous_o profess_v i_o never_o see_v more_o honest_a clergyman_n then_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o see_v you_o press_v and_o command_v i_o and_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o lie_v unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o profess_v you_o be_v not_o altogether_o to_o be_v follow_v in_o your_o work_n for_o he_o who_o dissent_v from_o the_o truth_n be_v a_o schismatic_a and_o heretic_n but_o of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n there_o be_v some_o who_o will_v not_o follow_v all_o our_o work_n but_o i_o fear_v lest_o while_o you_o continue_v ask_v these_o thing_n as_o you_o be_v please_v you_o hear_v from_o your_o foolish_a friend_n thing_n that_o will_v not_o please_v you_o why_o be_v it_o father_n that_o you_o search_v other_o man_n life_n and_o search_v not_o your_o own_o all_o man_n rejoice_v with_o you_o you_o be_v call_v the_o father_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o man_n and_o all_o the_o oil_n for_o sinner_n be_v pour_v on_o your_o head_n if_o you_o be_v a_o father_n why_o crave_v thou_o gift_n from_o thy_o child_n or_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o lord_n why_o cause_v thou_o not_o the_o roman_n to_o stand_v in_o awe_n of_o thou_o and_o have_v bridle_v their_o presumption_n bring_v they_o not_o again_o into_o the_o faith_n but_o thou_o will_v preserve_v the_o city_n unto_o the_o church_n by_o thy_o gift_n do_v pope_n sylvester_n so_o conquer_v it_o thou_o be_v a_o father_n in_o the_o byway_n and_o not_o in_o the_o right_a way_n it_o be_v to_o be_v conserve_v by_o such_o mean_n as_o it_o be_v purchase_v etc._n etc._n the_o pope_n tell_v he_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o member_n grumble_a against_o the_o womb_n and_o the_o same_o say_v he_o will_v befall_v unto_o christendom_n if_o they_o shall_v not_o resort_v unto_o rome_n their_o head_n and_o then_o the_o pope_n smile_v at_o the_o man_n boldness_n do_v require_v he_o that_o how_o oft_o he_o hear_v any_o thing_n speak_v amiss_o of_o he_o he_o will_v present_o advertise_v he_o without_o doubt_v this_o bishop_n have_v more_o thing_n in_o his_o mind_n which_o he_o utter_v not_o p._n morn_n in_o mist_n ex_fw-la io._n sarisbu_n in_o policrat_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 24._o in_o the_o same_o work_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 16._o he_o say_v the_o roman_a legate_n do_v so_o rage_v as_o if_o satan_n be_v come_v forth_o from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o oppress_v the_o church_n oft_o do_v they_o harm_v and_o herein_o they_o be_v like_o the_o devil_n that_o they_o be_v call_v good_a when_o they_o do_v not_o evil_a with_o they_o judgement_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o public_a reward_n they_o do_v account_n gain_v to_o be_v godliness_n they_o do_v justify_v the_o wicked_a for_o gift_n and_o vex_v the_o afflict_a soul_n they_o adorn_v their_o table_n with_o silver_n and_o gold_n and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o worst_a thing_n see_v they_o eat_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n they_o be_v clothe_v with_o they_o and_o in_o they_o do_v they_o riot_n many_o way_n whereas_o true_a worshipper_n shall_v adore_v the_o father_n in_o the_o spirit_n if_o any_o do_v dissent_n from_o they_o he_o be_v judge_v a_o schismatic_a or_o heretic_n o_o that_o christ_n will_v manifest_v himself_o and_o open_o show_v the_o way_n wherein_o man_n shall_v walk_v lib._n 7._o cap._n 10._o we_o shall_v be_v servant_n unto_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o domineer_v over_o they_o unless_o one_o will_v think_v himself_o worthy_a to_o rule_v over_o angel_n cap._n 17._o one_o come_v into_o the_o church_n trust_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o riches_n and_o follow_v simon_n nor_o find_v he_o any_o that_o say_v thy_o money_n perish_v with_o thou_o another_o fear_v to_o come_v unto_o peter_n with_o his_o gift_n yet_o privy_o jupiter_n slide_v in_o a_o shower_n of_o gold_n into_o danae_n bosom_n and_o the_o incestuous_a wooer_n enter_v so_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n the_o author_n of_o catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 14._o show_v ex_fw-la petro_n paris_n cantor_n in_o abbreviat_fw-la verbo_fw-la how_o this_o john_n do_v oppose_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o cardinal_n when_o they_o will_v enjoin_v some_o new_a rite_n and_o say_v you_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o enjoin_v new_a rite_n that_o you_o shall_v rather_o take_v away_o some_o ancient_a one_o albeit_o they_o be_v profitable_a for_o christian_n be_v much_o burden_a with_o the_o multitude_n of_o these_o useful_a tradition_n you_o shall_v rather_o endeavour_v that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v keep_v for_o now_o it_o may_v be_v object_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v make_v of_o no_o effect_n in_o respect_n of_o man_n tradition_n 8._o edmond_n rich_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n about_o the_o year_n 1181._o be_v church_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n wont_v to_o say_v by_o gift_n that_o be_v give_v on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o take_v on_o the_o other_o christianity_n be_v already_o corrupt_v and_o it_o will_v fail_v ere_o they_o be_v aware_a unless_o they_o be_v so_o wise_a as_o to_o cure_v themselves_o from_o this_o pest_n by_o these_o gift_n some_o do_v understand_v not_o so_o much_o what_o be_v give_v by_o intrant_n as_o what_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n give_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o such_o as_o speak_v against_o their_o vice_n and_o error_n to_o divert_v their_o reproof_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la 9_o petrus_n blesensis_n once_o chancellor_n of_o canterbury_n and_o then_o bishop_n of_o rotomagum_fw-la for_o his_o learning_n and_o honesty_n of_o life_n be_v in_o great_a favour_n with_o prince_n and_o prelate_n say_v trithem_n he_o do_v very_o sharp_o rebuke_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o clergy_n especial_o that_o they_o do_v abuse_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n to_o satisfy_v their_o avarice_n in_o epistle_n 25._o unto_o a_o friend_n who_o be_v a_o official_a of_o a_o bishop_n he_o say_v because_o i_o love_v thou_o affectionate_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o christ_n jesus_n i_o have_v decree_v to_o exhort_v thou_o with_o wholesome_a admonition_n to_o come_v timely_a out_o of_o ur_fw-la of_o the_o chaldee_n and_o from_o the_o midst_n of_o babylon_n and_o forsake_v the_o ministry_n of_o that_o damnable_a stewardship_n i_o know_v covetousness_n have_v subvert_v thy_o heart_n in_o so_o far_o as_o thou_o be_v become_v a_o official_a unto_o a_o bishop_n i_o think_v official_o have_v their_o name_n not_o from_o the_o noun_n officium_fw-la but_o from_o the_o verb_n officio_fw-la all_o the_o business_n of_o the_o official_a be_v in_o lieu_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o strip_v and_o excoriate_v the_o silly_a sheep_n which_o be_v concredit_v unto_o he_o these_o be_v the_o bishop_n bloodsucker_n spue_v out_o other_o folk_n blood_n after_o they_o have_v drink_v it_o the_o riches_n which_o the_o wicked_a have_v gather_v he_o shall_v spew_v it_o out_o and_o god_n shall_v draw_v it_o out_o of_o his_o belly_n these_o be_v as_o a_o sponge_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o strainer_n what_o he_o have_v gather_v by_o oppress_v the_o poor_a go_v unto_o the_o bishop_n pleasure_n but_o to_o the_o official_n torment_n as_o the_o bee_n gather_v honey_n not_o for_o themselves_o but_o for_o other_o so_o you_o gather_v riches_n not_o for_o yourselves_o but_o for_o other_o these_o be_v the_o privy_a door_n by_o which_o the_o servant_n of_o bell_n do_v thievish_o carry_v away_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o king_n have_v lay_v on_o the_o table_n so_o the_o bishop_n take_v away_o other_o man_n good_n with_o long_a hand_n and_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o the_o crime_n and_o infamy_n on_o the_o official_a they_o have_v their_o eye_n on_o the_o reward_n but_o look_v not_o to_o the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n what_o be_v do_v under_o pretence_n of_o counterfeit_a religion_n and_o justice_n avail_v not_o unto_o life_n nor_o edifi_v unto_o salvation_n saul_n do_v spare_v the_o fat_a of_o amalek_n flock_n as_o if_o he_o will_v sacrifice_v unto_o god_n and_o he_o do_v provoke_v god_n unto_o wrath_n i_o can_v the_o more_o patient_o endure_v that_o damnable_a office_n if_o thou_o be_v not_o eminent_a in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n these_o cause_n and_o judgement_n wherein_o thou_o have_v entangle_v thyself_o imprudent_o i_o will_v not_o say_v impudent_o be_v fit_a for_o a_o secular_a man_n a_o learned_a and_o ecclesiastical_a man_n shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o secular_a affair_n i_o wish_v that_o thou_o will_v forsake_v these_o noisome_a
shall_v continue_v in_o a_o chamber_n and_o not_o come_v forth_o nor_o have_v a_o dish_n of_o meat_n but_o one_o until_o they_o agree_v but_o neither_o be_v these_o observe_v he_o advance_v the_o dominican_n to_o high_a dignity_n even_o to_o red_a hat_n 11._o innocentius_n the_o v._o be_v the_o first_o pope_n of_o the_o order_n of_o dominican_n for_o gregory_n have_v advance_v so_o many_o of_o they_o that_o then_o the_o locust_n have_v power_n to_o choose_v their_o own_o king_n he_o procure_v peace_n betwixt_o the_o etrurians_n and_o pisanes_n and_o absolve_v they_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o pope_n gregory_n he_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o abrogate_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o he_o die_v in_o the_o five_o month_n 12._o hadrian_n the_o v._o in_o his_o short_a papacy_n of_o forty_o day_n send_v letter_n unto_o the_o emperor_n rodulph_n envit_v he_o to_o come_v into_o italy_n and_o take_v the_o kingdom_n of_o both_o sicily_n from_o charles_n duke_n of_o anjow_n 13._o john_n some_o call_v he_o xx._n some_o say_v xxi_o and_o other_o xxii_o as_o appear_v by_o what_o be_v say_v before_o of_o the_o john_n sit_v but_o eight_o month_n and_o do_v many_o thing_n smell_v of_o folly_n and_o levity_n say_v platina_n to_o wit_n he_o make_v these_o article_n against_o the_o beg_a friar_n 1._o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n on_o earth_n by_o lapse_n of_o time_n have_v proper_a and_o immediate_a right_n of_o garment_n shoe_n and_o other_o thing_n partly_o by_o donation_n of_o believer_n and_o partly_o he_o buy_v they_o 2._o christ_n never_o command_v his_o disciple_n to_o renounce_v their_o right_n and_o possession_n of_o temporal_a thing_n 3._o christ_n give_v no_o other_o law_n of_o life_n to_o his_o apostle_n then_o to_o his_o other_o disciple_n 4._o christ_n command_v not_o his_o apostle_n simple_o that_o they_o shall_v possess_v neither_o silver_n nor_o gold_n except_o only_o in_o that_o journey_n when_o they_o be_v go_v to_o preach_v and_o thereafter_o they_o may_v have_v these_o thing_n again_o 5._o the_o apostle_n have_v their_o own_o propriety_n and_o right_n of_o clothes_n shoe_n and_o sword_n and_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v send_v on_o they_o these_o word_n we_o have_v leave_v all_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o they_o renounce_v their_o propriety_n save_v only_o in_o affection_n 6._o the_o apostle_n may_v have_v have_v their_o particular_a dominion_n of_o castle_n or_o village_n or_o any_o other_o temporal_a good_n 7._o the_o apostle_n notwithstanding_o their_o evangelical_n perfection_n may_v have_v have_v immovable_a good_n in_o common_a as_o land_n but_o they_o have_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o judea_n because_o in_o the_o spirit_n they_o foresee_v that_o they_o must_v go_v among_o the_o nation_n 8._o the_o apostle_n never_o make_v a_o vow_n to_o renounce_v temporal_a thing_n catal._n ●est_v ver_fw-la lib._n 17._o these_o article_n be_v against_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o friar_n but_o experience_n show_v whether_o they_o be_v against_o their_o affection_n he_o revoke_v the_o constitution_n of_o pope_n gregory_n concern_v the_o chamber_n and_o after_o he_o the_o election_n go_v not_o in_o that_o manner_n but_o be_v more_o weigh_v by_o the_o purse_n until_o pope_n celestin_n the_o v._o renew_v the_o same_o canon_n he_o canonize_a lewes_n bishop_n of_o tolouse_n and_o son_n of_o charles_n king_n of_o france_n and_o thomas_n aquinas_n the_o black_a friar_n he_o dream_v of_o long_a life_n and_o say_v he_o know_v so_o by_o the_o star_n but_o as_o he_o be_v walk_v under_o a_o vault_n which_o he_o have_v make_v for_o his_o pleasure_n at_o viterbio_n it_o fall_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o next_o day_n he_o be_v find_v among_o the_o rubbish_n platina_n 14._o nicolaus_n the_o iii_o a_o roman_a of_o the_o family_n of_o ursini_n be_v of_o as_o great_a authority_n as_o any_o pope_n before_o he_o pope_n clemens_n have_v give_v the_o government_n of_o rome_n unto_o charles_n duke_n of_o anjow_n under_o the_o title_n of_o senator_n and_o nicolaus_n take_v this_o office_n unto_o himself_o and_o he_o incit_v peter_n king_n of_o arragon_n to_o claim_v the_o right_n of_o both_o sicily_n because_o he_o have_v marry_v constantia_n the_o only_a child_n of_o manfred_n and_o take_v that_o kingdom_n he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o that_o famous_a decretal_a in_o 6._o in_o c._n fundamenta_fw-la do_fw-mi de_fw-fr election_n &_o electi_fw-la potestate_fw-la to_o wit_n god_n have_v assume_v peter_n into_o the_o society_n of_o individual_a unity_n the_o lord_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v call_v that_o that_o he_o be_v himself_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n that_o from_o he_o as_o the_o head_n he_o may_v pour_v his_o gift_n on_o his_o body_n the_o church_n thus_o they_o become_v more_o arrogant_a and_o blasphemous_a he_o take_v in_o bononia_n flaminia_n and_o other_o city_n into_o the_o papal_a see_n he_o make_v a_o law_n that_o no_o king_n nor_o king_n son_n shall_v be_v senator_n of_o rome_n he_o begin_v to_o talk_v of_o make_v two_o king_n of_o his_o own_o kindred_n one_o of_o hetruria_n and_o another_o of_o lombardie_n but_o he_o be_v prevent_v by_o death_n platina_n say_v he_o be_v report_v to_o have_v love_v his_o kinsfolk_n too_o much_o and_o to_o have_v rob_v from_o other_o to_o give_v unto_o they_o without_o all_o reason_n he_o have_v a_o park_n for_o hare_n at_o rome_n and_o sit_v almost_o four_o year_n 15._o martin_n the_o iv_o a_o french_a man_n restore_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nicolaus_n charles_n to_o his_o office_n of_o senator_n of_o rome_n and_o government_n of_o hetruria_n whereas_o many_o pope_n have_v their_o ordinary_a residence_n at_o viterbio_n he_o be_v force_v to_o flee_v because_o of_o sedition_n betwixt_o the_o italian_a and_o french_a cardinal_n and_o be_v crown_v at_o urbe_fw-la vetere_n or_o orvieto_fw-la now_o charles_n think_v to_o have_v subdue_v michael_n paleologus_fw-la emperor_n of_o the_o east_n but_o michael_n and_o peter_n of_o arragon_n have_v secret_a correspondence_n and_o levy_v a_o army_n upon_o common_a charge_n the_o pope_n understand_v this_o send_v unto_o peter_n ask_v why_o he_o be_v amass_v such_o a_o army_n peter_n answer_v if_o i_o know_v my_o shirt_n be_v privy_a to_o my_o intention_n i_o will_v burn_v it_o so_o peter_n pass_v over_o with_o his_o army_n unto_o the_o coast_n of_o africa_n there_o he_o take_v some_o prey_n and_o return_v into_o sardinia_n await_v his_o opportunity_n to_o come_v into_o sicily_n the_o sicilian_n hate_v the_o siculae_fw-la vigiliae_fw-la siculae_fw-la french_a and_o they_o all_o conspire_v that_o on_o easter_n day_n when_o the_o bell_n be_v toll_v to_o the_o evening_n mass_n they_o shall_v kill_v all_o the_o french_a it_o come_v so_o to_o pass_v that_o they_o spare_v not_o a_o woman_n with_o child_n that_o night_n be_v thereafter_o vigiliae_fw-la siculae_fw-la then_o john_n prochyta_n the_o chief_a author_n of_o that_o conspiracy_n advertise_v peter_n and_o bring_v he_o in_o charles_n be_v in_o italy_n and_o then_o be_v continual_a war_n betwixt_o the_o two_o sicily_n until_o charles_n die_v and_o peter_n take_v his_o son_n and_o hold_v he_o captive_a the_o pope_n send_v his_o legate_n unto_o naples_n to_o hold_v that_o kingdom_n in_o name_n of_o the_o captive_a charles_n and_o he_o excommunicate_v peter_n for_o sacrilege_n and_o give_v his_o kingdom_n of_o castil_n and_o arragon_n unto_o any_o who_o will_v enter_v and_o occupy_v they_o behold_v the_o contrariety_n of_o the_o pope_n peter_n be_v not_o afraid_a of_o the_o vain_a curse_n of_o the_o pretend_a peter_n who_o die_v in_o sorrow_n in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o his_o papacy_n martin_n give_v unto_o the_o beg_a friar_n liberty_n to_o hear_v confession_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n 16._o honorius_n the_o iv_o be_v elect_v at_o perusio_n when_o his_o brother_n pandolf_n be_v roman_n senator_n he_o make_v haste_n to_o rome_n and_o dwell_v on_o the_o hill_n aventine_n he_o ratify_v the_o excommunication_n of_o peter_n in_o his_o time_n be_v war_n betwixt_o peter_n and_o charles_n betwixt_o the_o genoese_a and_o venetian_n and_o betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o guido_n feltrenus_n for_o the_o province_n of_o flaminia_n then_o sickness_n be_v so_o rise_v that_o so_o many_o cardinal_n die_v that_o the_o remanent_fw-la say_v god_n be_v against_o the_o election_n therefore_o it_o be_v delay_v ten_o month_n 17._o nicolaus_n the_o iv_o hire_a soldier_n to_o go_v unto_o the_o defence_n of_o ptolemais_n which_o only_o remain_v of_o all_o the_o late_a conquest_n when_o they_o come_v thither_o they_o do_v no_o less_o damage_n to_o the_o christian_n then_o to_o the_o saracen_n by_o dissension_n or_o rather_o ambition_n of_o these_o papalines_n ptolemais_n be_v lose_v 196._o year_n after_o the_o first_o conquest_n contrary_n unto_o pope_n john_n xxii_o do_v
more_o contrary_a unto_o the_o apostle_n or_o more_o hateful_a unto_o christ_n jesus_n then_o to_o destroy_v soul_n by_o defraud_v they_o of_o the_o ministry_n ....._o in_o a_o word_n the_o holiness_n of_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n but_o unto_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o destruction_n for_o this_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o power_n to_o edification_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o call_v provision_n be_v not_o to_o edification_n but_o most_o manifest_a destruction_n the_o pope_n hear_v this_o letter_n foam_v as_o in_o a_o rage_n and_o swear_v by_o peter_n and_o paul_n that_o he_o will_v hurl_v such_o a_o phrenetick_a wretch_n into_o confusion_n which_o dare_v so_o bold_o control_v his_o command_n and_o make_v he_o a_o fable_n unto_o the_o world_n be_v not_o the_o king_n of_o england_n our_o vassal_n yea_o and_o slave_n who_o i_o at_o my_o nod_n may_v thrust_v into_o prison_n the_o cardinal_n namely_o aegidius_n a_o spaniard_n and_o some_o other_o touch_v in_o conscience_n can_v scarce_o appease_v his_o fury_n and_o among_o other_o word_n they_o say_v to_o confess_v the_o truth_n unto_o your_o holiness_n it_o be_v true_a what_o he_o say_v and_o we_o can_v condemn_v he_o for_o it_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_n man_n more_o holy_a and_o religious_a than_o we_o ourselves_o be_v and_o as_o it_o be_v judge_v among_o all_o the_o prelate_n there_o be_v none_o better_o nor_o his_o equal_a this_o be_v not_o unknown_a universal_o nor_o can_v our_o contradiction_n avail_v against_o he_o wherefore_o we_o think_v best_a to_o pass_v by_o such_o a_o thing_n lest_o perhaps_o some_o tumult_n arise_v thereupon_o especial_o see_v it_o be_v manifest_a unto_o all_o man_n that_o once_o must_v come_v a_o defection_n and_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o robert_n lie_v on_o his_o death_n bed_n he_o say_v unto_o the_o brethren_n come_v to_o visit_v he_o heresid_n be_v a_o opinion_n take_v up_o by_o human_a sense_n contrary_a white_a heresy_n white_a unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n open_o avow_v and_o pertinacious_o maintain_v be_v not_o innocentius_n therefore_o a_o heretic_n and_o since_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o antichrist_n the_o pope_n a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n world_n to_o save_v soul_n may_v not_o the_o pope_n be_v just_o call_v the_o antichrist_n who_o fear_v not_o to_o destroy_v soul_n the_o pope_n do_v impudent_o annul_v the_o privilege_n of_o his_o ancestor_n ...._o and_o therefore_o the_o contemner_n shall_v be_v contemn_v according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o esay_n woe_n to_o thou_o who_o despise_v ....._o matth._n parisien_n 9_o in_o the_o year_n 1240._o a_o carthusian_n monk_n at_o cambridge_n say_v open_o before_o otho_n the_o legate_n gregory_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o chutch_n but_o there_o be_v another_o head_n thereof_o satan_n be_v loose_v the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n gregory_n which_o be_v call_v pope_n defile_v the_o church_n and_o the_o world_n the_o legate_n say_v unto_o he_o be_v not_o power_n give_v from_o above_o unto_o the_o pope_n to_o loose_v and_o bind_v soul_n and_o to_o exerce_fw-la the_o charge_n of_o peter_n on_o earth_n the_o monk_n reply_v how_o can_v i_o think_v that_o such_o power_n as_o be_v give_v unto_o peter_n be_v give_v to_o a_o simoniack_a and_o usurer_n yea_o and_o who_o be_v defile_v with_o great_a crime_n the_o legate_n do_v blush_v for_o shame_n and_o say_v we_o may_v not_o strive_v in_o word_n with_o a_o fool_n idem_fw-la 10._o seval_fw-fr archbishop_n of_o york_n follow_v in_o the_o same_o footstep_n when_o he_o see_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o pope_n usurp_a and_o tyrannize_v above_o the_o king_n he_o be_v astonish_v and_o in_o the_o grief_n of_o his_o heart_n he_o entreat_v pope_n alexander_n the_o iv_o by_o letter_n that_o he_o will_v leave_v off_o from_o such_o daily_a enormity_n or_o at_o least_o refrain_v himself_o and_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o good_a man_n that_o he_o will_v feed_v christ_n lamb_n as_o peter_n do_v and_o not_o pull_v the_o skin_n off_o they_o and_o devour_v they_o like_o a_o hungry_a wolf_n the_o pope_n have_v give_v the_o fat_a of_o his_o benefice_n unto_o some_o wanton_a young_a man_n and_o ignorant_a of_o the_o language_n as_o he_o make_v jordanus_n dean_n of_o york_n etc._n etc._n seval_n will_v admit_v none_o of_o they_o wherefore_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v he_o with_o bell_n and_o candle_n he_o can_v suffer_v these_o ceremony_n but_o he_o can_v not_o suffer_v stranger_n to_o be_v set_v over_o the_o people_n and_o the_o more_o he_o be_v curse_v by_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v the_o more_o belove_v of_o the_o people_n and_o they_o do_v bless_v he_o yet_o quiet_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o roman_n although_o he_o be_v not_o murder_v yet_o for_o his_o suffering_n he_o be_v call_v a_o martyr_n idem_fw-la ad_fw-la an._n 1257._o 11._o matthew_z of_o paris_n who_o i_o have_v often_o name_v be_v a_o benedictine_n of_o saint_n alban_n he_o write_v the_o history_n of_o england_n from_o the_o day_n of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n until_o the_o year_n of_o his_o own_o death_n 1260._o where_o he_o describe_v how_o other_o speak_v against_o the_o abomination_n of_o antichrist_n to_o the_o end_n that_o posterity_n may_v know_v and_o abhor_v it_o and_o thereby_o he_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v his_o own_o thought_n as_o here_o and_o there_o he_o express_v himself_o e._n g._n ad_fw-la an._n 1237._o he_o say_v it_o be_v manifest_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alas_o have_v deserve_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n for_o the_o guide_v thereof_o seek_v not_o the_o devotion_n of_o people_n but_o their_o full_a purse_n not_o to_o gain_v soul_n unto_o god_n but_o to_o collect_v revenue_n to_o themselves_o to_o oppress_v the_o religious_a and_o many_o way_n impudent_o to_o catch_v other_o man_n good_n ......_o hence_o ariseth_z grumble_a among_o man_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v provoke_v daily_o ad_fw-la an._n 1238._o he_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o successor_n but_o not_o the_o imitator_n of_o peter_n ad_fw-la an._n 1245._o he_o say_v the_o pope_n send_v unto_o the_o king_n of_o arragon_n and_o then_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o england_n crave_v that_o he_o may_v come_v and_o abide_v in_o their_o kingdom_n and_o the_o nobility_n do_v refuse_v because_o the_o papal_a court_n be_v so_o infamous_a that_o the_o strength_n thereof_o go_v up_o unto_o the_o cloud_n ad_fw-la an._n 1251._o he_o say_v the_o threaten_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v fulfil_v unless_o there_o be_v a_o depart_a the_o son_n of_o perdition_n shall_v not_o be_v reveal_v behold_v that_o man_n heart_n depart_v and_o not_o their_o body_n from_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v enrage_v like_o a_o stepfather_n and_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v cruel_a in_o persecute_v like_o a_o stepmother_n 12._o john_n russel_n a_o english_a gentleman_n who_o marry_v the_o widow_n of_o walter_n cumin_n earl_n of_o lenox_n about_o the_o year_n 1262._o afterward_o he_o purchase_v letter_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o summon_v a_o number_n of_o scot_n to_o appear_v in_o england_n before_o the_o legate_n for_o slander_v his_o wife_n of_o witchcraft_n and_o poison_v her_o first_o husband_n the_o scot_n despise_v the_o citation_n allege_v their_o ancient_a privilege_n that_o scotch_a man_n can_v be_v charge_v to_o answer_v without_o their_o own_o country_n and_o so_o the_o summon_v turn_v to_o nothing_o say_v buchan_n hist_o lib._n 7._o 13._o within_o some_o few_o year_n king_n alexander_n the_o iii_o be_v encumber_v with_o precedency_n the_o lord_n and_o bishop_n strive_v for_o precedency_n the_o pride_n of_o priest_n and_o monk_n say_v the_o same_o author_n there_o he_o understand_v certain_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n which_o be_v enrich_v say_v he_o by_o former_a king_n and_o enjoy_v long_a prosperity_n begin_v to_o grow_v rank_n and_o will_v go_v before_o the_o nobility_n as_o in_o wealth_n so_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n or_o at_o least_o be_v equal_a with_o they_o the_o noble_a man_n take_v this_o in_o ill_a part_n and_o deal_v rough_o with_o they_o wherefore_o they_o complain_v unto_o the_o king_n whether_o he_o think_v these_o injury_n not_o to_o be_v so_o heinous_a as_o the_o priest_n call_v they_o or_o if_o he_o think_v that_o they_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n yet_o he_o make_v no_o account_n of_o they_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n do_v excommunicate_v all_o the_o noble_a man_n except_v the_o king_n only_o and_o with_o many_o threat_n do_v prepare_v themselves_o to_o go_v unto_o rome_n then_o the_o king_n calling_z to_z mind_n what_o broil_v tho._n becket_n have_v raise_v in_o england_n by_o his_o ambition_n call_v the_o bishop_n from_o their_o journey_n and_o compel_v the_o nobility_n to_o yield_v unto_o their_o pride_n thus_o the_o spiritual_a
small_a like_o a_o tree_n then_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o i_o it_o signify_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n again_o he_o say_v as_o i_o be_v the_o same_o way_n exercise_v i_o see_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o behold_v a_o man_n walk_v in_o the_o same_o habit_n carry_v sweet_a bread_n on_o his_o shoulder_n and_o very_o good_a wine_n by_o his_o side_n and_o he_o hold_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o round_a stone_n bite_v it_o with_o his_o tooth_n as_o a_o hungry_a man_n bit_v bread_n but_o he_o do_v nothing_o then_o two_o head_n of_o serpent_n come_v out_o of_o the_o stone_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n instruct_v i_o say_v this_o stone_n be_v unprofitable_a and_o curious_a question_n wherewith_o the_o hungry_a soul_n be_v turmoil_v when_o they_o leave_v substantial_a thing_n and_o i_o say_v what_o mean_v those_o two_o head_n he_o say_v the_o name_n of_o the_o one_o be_v vain_a glory_n and_o the_o other_o be_v overthrow_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o about_o that_o time_n the_o chief_a question_n in_o the_o school_n be_v whether_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o whether_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o evacuate_v what_o eat_v a_o mouse_n when_o she_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n wherein_o subsi_v the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n whether_o in_o christ_n body_n or_o by_o themselves_o etc._n etc._n again_o he_o say_v i_o see_v a_o clear_a cross_n of_o silver_n like_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o tolouse_n but_o the_o twelve_o apple_n of_o it_o be_v like_a to_o vile_a apple_n that_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n what_o be_v this_o lord_n jesus_n the_o spirit_n say_v the_o cross_n be_v the_o church_n which_o shall_v be_v clear_a with_o pureness_n of_o life_n and_o shrill_a with_o the_o clear_a voice_n of_o the_o truth_n preach_v then_o i_o say_v what_o mean_v those_o rot_a apple_n the_o humiliation_n of_o the_o churchman_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v here_o he_o prophesy_v of_o the_o reformation_n possevin_n in_o apparto_n 2._o call_v this_o robert_n a_o excellent_a preacher_n of_o the_o word_n mornay_n in_o myster_n pag._n 427._o 6._o marsilius_n paravinus_n write_v the_o book_n defensor_fw-la pacis_fw-la about_o the_o year_n 1324._o there_o he_o debate_v the_o question_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n law_n canon_n and_o history_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a he_o maintain_v these_o position_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a head_n and_o foundation_n of_o day_n rare_a thesis_n in_o those_o day_n the_o church_n he_o make_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v universal_a vicar_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o make_v he_o the_o other_o apostle_n subject_a unto_o peter_n it_o be_v more_o probable_a that_o peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n far_o less_o have_v he_o his_o seat_n there_o who_o have_v no_o fix_a seat_n as_o also_o not_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o fullness_n of_o power_n in_o any_o man_n be_v a_o manifest_a lie_n a_o execrable_a title_n the_o beginning_n of_o many_o evil_n and_o the_o use_n thereof_o shall_v be_v discharge_v in_o a_o good_a council_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o key_n be_v that_o judiciary_n power_n that_o consist_v in_o dispense_n the_o word_n the_o sacrament_n and_o discipline_n christ_n who_o vicar_n the_o pope_n call_v himself_o do_v never_o exercise_v temporal_a authority_n on_o earth_n he_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o magistrate_n and_o so_o be_v his_o apostle_n after_o his_o ascension_n and_o they_o teach_v other_o to_o obey_v prince_n if_o a_o pope_n usurp_v temporal_a authority_n prince_n shall_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n resist_v by_o word_n and_o deed_n or_o they_o be_v unjust_a and_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o those_o who_o fight_v for_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v account_v the_o soldier_n of_o satan_n unto_o the_o pope_n belong_v not_o the_o election_n nor_o confirmation_n of_o the_o emperor_n but_o contrary_o the_o christian_a prince_n with_o consent_n of_o clergy_n and_o people_n shall_v name_v the_o pope_n or_o if_o one_o be_v choose_v in_o his_o absence_n he_o shall_v confirm_v he_o if_o the_o pope_n go_v astray_o or_o be_v accurse_v the_o emperor_n shall_v reduce_v he_o into_o the_o way_n and_o judge_v he_o in_o a_o council_n when_o peter_n live_v he_o may_v have_v fall_v and_o err_v neither_o have_v the_o pope_n any_o privilege_n against_o error_n that_o that_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o be_v to_o be_v extend_v unto_o the_o other_o apostle_n only_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n against_o which_o canon_n we_o may_v not_o believe_v either_o pope_n or_o church_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o any_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n we_o may_v not_o believe_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n see_v not_o once_o have_v they_o seduce_v silly_a soul_n into_o hell_n the_o christian_a church_n be_v the_o universality_n of_o believer_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n she_o be_v represent_v in_o a_o lawful_a and_o general_a council_n a_o council_n shall_v be_v assemble_v by_o the_o emperor_n with_o consent_n of_o christian_a prince_n as_o ancient_o it_o be_v always_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a rule_n and_o chief_a judge_n in_o decide_v cause_n ecclesiastical_a not_o only_o the_o clergy_n by_o lay_v man_n also_o if_o they_o be_v godly_a and_o learned_a shall_v have_v voice_n in_o general_a counsel_n the_o clergy_n and_o synagogue_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o den_n of_o thief_n etc._n etc._n this_o book_n be_v print_v at_o basil_n an._n 1522._o in_o another_o treatise_n he_o say_v good_a work_n be_v not_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o salvation_n but_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la quanon_fw-mi mornay_n ibid._n pag._n 452._o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n by_o pope_n john_n the_o xxiii_o catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 18._o consider_v what_o a_o modern_a can_v say_v more_o of_o this_o matter_n and_o whether_o they_o show_v not_o themselves_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o antiquity_n who_o accuse_v we_o of_o novelty_n 7._o the_o same_o position_n be_v hold_v by_o john_n de_fw-fr janduno_n or_o gandanensis_fw-la at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o his_o book_n print_v at_o venice_n and_o florence_n so_o write_v also_o luitpold_a bishop_n of_o bamberg_n namely_o in_o a_o treatise_n de_fw-fr translatione_fw-la imperii_fw-la print_v lutet_n an._n 1540_o he_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o govern_v the_o empire_n belong_v unto_o the_o emperor_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v choose_v and_o the_o coronation_n by_o the_o pope_n add_v nothing_o since_o caesar_n be_v not_o his_o vassal_n nor_o feudatory_a the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n be_v but_o a_o fable_n he_o be_v also_o condemn_v by_o pope_n john_n catal._n test_n ibid._n michael_n cesenas_n general_n of_o the_o franciscan_n be_v bold_a say_v express_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o antichrist_n and_o rome_n be_v babylon_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n therefore_o antonin_n par_fw-fr 3._o tit_n 21._o cap._n 5._o reckon_v he_o among_o the_o poor_a man_n of_o lion_n for_o the_o valdenses_n still_o suffer_v persecution_n in_o sundry_a country_n and_o under_o divers_a name_n as_o the_o adversary_n please_v to_o brand_v they_o many_o error_n be_v impute_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n but_o because_o they_o do_v abhor_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n they_o be_v revile_v as_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o arnold_n de_fw-fr villanova_n and_o seek_v out_o to_o the_o fire_n as_o an._n 1302._o nogaret_n the_o father_n of_o he_o who_o take_v pope_n boniface_n the_o viii_o be_v burn_v in_o aquitania_n clemens_n the_o v._o cause_v it_o to_o be_v proclaim_v to_o take_v up_o the_o flag_n of_o the_o cross_n against_o they_o and_o destroy_v 4000_o near_o the_o alps_o whether_o they_o have_v sle_z platin._n other_o go_v high_o unto_o the_o mountain_n of_o who_o some_o remain_v in_o his_o day_n say_v antonin_n par_fw-fr 3._o tit_n 22._o cap._n 10._o from_o they_o be_v the_o in-dweller_n of_o angronia_n and_o adjacent_a part_n continue_v until_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n trithemius_n testify_v of_o many_o that_o be_v burn_v in_o austria_n about_o that_o time_n howbeit_o he_o believe_v the_o report_n of_o malice_n impute_v many_o error_n unto_o they_o yet_o he_o testify_v that_o they_o abhor_v the_o mass_n call_v the_o hosty_a a_o god_n invent_v by_o man_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o synagogue_n of_o unbeliever_n and_o not_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n they_o deny_v all_o man_n merit_n intercession_n of_o saint_n the_o difference_n of_o day_n and_o meat_n etc._n etc._n he_o witness_v also_o that_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v innumerable_a in_o bohemia_n austria_n
and_o also_o in_o other_o science_n do_v lament_v that_o simony_n be_v so_o frequent_a and_o manifest_a in_o the_o court_n and_o many_o jurist_n do_v dispute_v in_o the_o contrary_a and_o have_v write_v although_o with_o fear_n sundry_a treatise_n that_o the_o pope_n by_o sell_v church-benefice_n be_v a_o simoniack_a a_o successor_n of_o simon_n magus_n and_o not_o of_o peter_n 24._o about_o that_o time_n be_v write_v another_o book_n de_fw-fr aetatibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la therein_o time_n aparallel_n of_o time_n the_o author_n show_v what_o have_v be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o former_a age_n namely_o that_o bishop_n be_v not_o ambitious_a of_o superiority_n or_o earthly_a authority_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o supremacy_n above_o other_o bishop_n the_o name_n papae_fw-la be_v common_a to_o other_o bishop_n by_o divers_a step_n the_o pope_n have_v usurp_v this_o tyranny_n he_o call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o servant_n and_o strive_v to_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o lord_n he_o take_v divine_a honour_n and_o praise_n and_o he_o make_v or_o suffer_v man_n to_o be_v idolater_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 18._o 25._o in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o century_n or_o beginning_n of_o the_o next_o live_v nilus_n latin_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n who_o write_v two_o book_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o lib._n 1._o he_o say_v the_o cause_n be_v not_o the_o sublimity_n of_o doctrine_n surpass_v man_n capacity_n and_o far_o less_o be_v it_o any_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o if_o it_o do_v not_o declare_v what_o concern_v this_o controversy_n for_o to_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o man_n will_v accuse_v god_n ....._o what_o then_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o difference_n the_o question_n be_v not_o confirm_v by_o a_o decree_n of_o a_o oecunomical_a synod_n and_o the_o roman_n will_v be_v master_n and_o make_v all_o other_o their_o disciple_n ......_o it_o be_v very_o absurd_a that_o whereas_o the_o father_n have_v no_o precedent_n yet_o by_o themselves_o rhey_a see_v the_o right_a we_o have_v their_o example_n can_v discern_v it_o and_o indeed_o the_o ignorance_n of_o those_o at_o the_o first_o contention_n may_v be_v pardon_v ......_o but_o when_o so_o many_o age_n have_v pass_v and_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o know_v who_o can_v think_v but_o it_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o they_o who_o will_v not_o have_v peace_n but_o they_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n and_o the_o father_n who_o have_v power_n to_o call_v universal_a synod_n and_o by_o himself_o or_o without_o other_o may_v discern_v in_o church-affair_n but_o julius_n be_v pope_n and_o damasus_n and_o leo_n and_o agatho_n and_o none_o of_o these_o ever_o say_v so_o but_o conveen_v with_o their_o brethren_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o good_a spirit_n they_o establish_v act_n and_o peace_n in_o the_o church_n and_o if_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n and_o it_o be_v not_o now_o observe_v who_o can_v doubt_v but_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o variance_n stand_v herein_o and_o certain_o the_o blame_n lie_v not_o upon_o our_o side_n and_o if_o the_o power_n of_o discern_v belong_v unto_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o call_v assembliet_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o we_o know_v that_o agatho_n celestin_n and_o other_o have_v their_o particular_a synod_n for_o decide_v question_n and_o nevertheless_o they_o refer_v those_o unto_o the_o universal_a synod_n and_o crave_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o common_a decree_n which_o have_v be_v needless_a if_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v discern_v all_o other_o must_v assent_v unto_o he_o now_o if_o this_o question_n be_v concern_v a_o private_a man_n it_o may_v seem_v needless_a to_o call_v all_o the_o world_n unto_o a_o assembly_n but_o see_v the_o chief_a head_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o variance_n it_o be_v absurd_a to_o determine_v the_o cause_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o world_n since_o the_o father_n by_o their_o writing_n and_o example_n have_v show_v the_o way_n but_o if_o they_o will_v still_o object_v unto_o we_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n we_o say_v that_o in_o so_o do_v he_o overthrow_v his_o primacy_n but_o by_o hold_v the_o ancient_a way_n he_o do_v what_o become_v a_o good_a man_n and_o maintain_v his_o place_n for_o he_o may_v consider_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o ●ssue_n if_o the_o controversy_n be_v decide_v after_o common_a suffrage_n and_o what_o have_v happen_v unto_o the_o latin_n arrogate_a unto_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o prescribe_v law_n for_o in_o that_o way_n the_o church_n may_v be_v free_a from_o all_o tumult_n and_o live_v in_o peace_n since_o none_o can_v ready_o contradict_v that_o which_o be_v establish_v by_o common_a sentence_n for_o though_o some_o in_o former_a time_n have_v be_v so_o mad_a yet_o they_o be_v but_o few_o and_o vanish_v soon_o but_o when_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v disturb_v he_o lose_v what_o he_o may_v have_v for_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o peace_n many_o have_v think_v upon_o remedy_n there_o have_v be_v many_o conference_n and_o ambassay_n but_o the_o malady_n continue_v and_o shall_v continue_v so_o long_o as_o the_o latin_n hold_v their_o tenet_n the_o pope_n say_v they_o have_v power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n so_o say_v i_o let_v he_o not_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n they_o establish_v thing_n by_o universal_a council_n and_o each_o have_v need_n of_o another_o aid_n be_v conscious_a of_o humane_a frailty_n let_v the_o pope_n therefore_o follow_v their_o statute_n and_o discern_v not_o any_o point_n before_o it_o be_v debate_v by_o other_o or_o if_o he_o have_v his_o power_n not_o from_o the_o father_n but_o from_o the_o apostle_n let_v he_o hearken_v unto_o the_o apostle_n who_o say_v i_o have_v not_o use_v my_o power_n lest_o i_o lay_v a_o stumbling-block_n unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o power_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o to_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o destruction_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o have_v any_o power_n let_v he_o not_o use_v it_o but_o for_o advance_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o follow_v paul_n example_n he_o may_v show_v himself_o a_o apostolical_a man_n bet_v now_o none_o can_v be_v ignorant_a whether_o he_o use_v it_o for_o edification_n or_o destruction_n ......_o and_o that_o precedent_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n st._n peter_n be_v rebuke_v by_o paul_n and_o when_o he_o be_v rebuke_v he_o be_v silent_a and_o although_o he_o may_v have_v say_v more_o reasonable_o than_o the_o pope_n what_o i_o the_o precedent_n have_v do_v shall_v be_v a_o law_n unto_o other_o yet_o he_o say_v not_o so_o but_o accept_v the_o admonition_n and_o contradict_v not_o what_o paul_n have_v say_v ....._o and_o when_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n for_o that_o question_n of_o the_o circumcision_n peter_n usurp_v not_o primacy_n nor_o say_v he_o it_o belong_v unto_o i_o to_o discern_v in_o such_o thing_n but_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n be_v assemble_v neither_o do_v peter_n debar_v the_o apostle_n usurp_v power_n nor_o do_v the_o apostle_n exclude_v the_o elder_n that_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o christ_n to_o usurp_v no_o primacy_n peter_n indeed_o begin_v to_o speak_v and_o after_o he_o st._n james_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n even_o peter_n himself_o consent_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o james_n so_o do_v these_o bless_a man_n love_n christ_n and_o so_o studious_a be_v they_o of_o peace_n and_o truth_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o apostle_n seek_v truth_n this_o way_n have_v give_v we_o a_o law_n in_o such_o case_n but_o see_v you_o take_v a_o contrary_a course_n can_v you_o blame_v any_o but_o yourselves_o for_o this_o variance_n this_o be_v a_o touch_n of_o more_o whence_o we_o see_v that_o the_o roman_n want_v not_o admonition_n 26._o with_o the_o book_n of_o this_o nilus_n be_v usual_o print_v another_o of_o barlaam_n a_o greek_a monk_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o cap._n 16._o he_o recapitulate_v all_o the_o particular_n that_o he_o have_v handle_v say_v i_o have_v show_v that_o each_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v immediate_o appoint_v by_o our_o lord_n christ_n to_o be_v a_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n 2._o that_o bless_a clemens_n be_v create_v by_o peter_n not_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o of_o rome_n especial_o and_o proper_o and_o that_o the_o roman_a see_v
be_v neither_o first_o nor_o last_o and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o godly_a emperor_n it_o become_v the_o first_o 3._o that_o these_o also_o have_v decree_v that_o the_o see_v of_o new_a rome_n even_o as_o the_o other_o shall_v have_v power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v command_v by_o no_o law_n nor_o be_v any_o custom_n that_o the_o patriarch_n shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o the_o pope_n neither_o be_v it_o ever_o so_o do_v 5._o that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n over_o counsel_n but_o they_o give_v law_n unto_o his_o church_n 6._o that_o the_o holy_a father_n appoint_v distinct_o what_o part_n shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o the_o pope_n and_o which_o unto_o each_o of_o the_o patriarch_n 7._o that_o no_o patriarch_n nor_o the_o pope_n may_v decree_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o any_o thing_n of_o more_o weight_n 8._o that_o such_o honour_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o pope_n obey_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n but_o if_o he_o obey_v not_o man_n shall_v fly_v from_o he_o as_o a_o wolf_n and_o adversary_n 9_o that_o christian_n shall_v believe_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o faith_n but_o not_o any_o particular_a church_n since_o it_o be_v not_o so_o ordain_v from_o the_o beginning_n 10._o and_o last_o that_o such_o as_o refuse_v or_o despise_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o profess_v to_o believe_v a_o particular_a church_n or_o faith_n be_v member_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o dead_a member_n here_o for_o clear_v the_o second_o article_n i_o add_v the_o word_n of_o cap._n 3._o where_o he_o object_v as_o the_o roman_n do_v that_o peter_n die_v at_o rome_n and_o therefore_o the_o roman_a bishop_n shall_v have_v as_o full_a power_n he_o answer_v by_o this_o reason_n it_o follow_v because_o our_o lord_n jesus_n die_v for_o we_o at_o jerusalem_n the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n succeed_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n shall_v have_v power_n over_o all_o and_o so_o much_o more_o than_o the_o roman_a bishop_n as_o christ_n be_v above_o peter_n moreover_o how_o unreasonable_a be_v it_o to_o say_v that_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o successor_n but_o only_o peter_n or_o if_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n will_v leave_v successor_n either_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o or_o the_o steward_n of_o those_o church_n where_o they_o end_v their_o life_n how_o say_v you_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v create_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v you_o say_v that_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v by_o peter_n and_o if_o that_o be_v not_o how_o can_v it_o be_v demand_v that_o their_o successor_n shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o he_o who_o you_o call_v peter_n successor_n but_o certain_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v successor_n of_o who_o none_o be_v first_o or_o last_o but_o all_o equal_a and_o of_o the_o same_o rank_n then_o concern_v the_o eight_o point_n in_o chap._n 14._o he_o say_v the_o pope_n can_v be_v a_o heretic_n unto_o this_o objection_n he_o answer_v what_o say_v you_o i_o see_v he_o dead_a and_o you_o say_v he_o can_v die_v object_n many_o patriarch_n have_v be_v heretic_n but_o not_o one_o pope_n answ_n let_v macedonius_n say_v no_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n before_o i_o be_v a_o heretic_n therefore_o neither_o be_o i_o one_o or_o rather_o to_o use_v a_o more_o familiar_a example_n if_o any_o will_v plead_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o filthy_a woman_n who_o be_v pope_n and_o say_v because_o never_o a_o woman_n be_v pope_n before_o she_o therefore_o neither_o be_v she_o one_o what_o sound_a reason_n be_v in_o such_o argue_v in_o chap._n 15._o he_o clear_o distinguish_v between_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o roman_a and_o as_o no_o man_n do_v ever_o name_v the_o roman_a church_n when_o he_o mean_v the_o catholic_n church_n so_o no_o man_n be_v right_a in_o his_o wit_n do_v ever_o name_v the_o roman_a faith_n when_o he_o mean_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o that_o catholic_n or_o common_a faith_n we_o have_v hitherto_o preserve_v and_o god_n guard_v we_o we_o will_v observe_v it_o unto_o the_o end_n say_v he_o 27._o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o century_n john_n vitodura_n a_o franciscan_a in_o the_o monastery_n of_o st._n montis_fw-la write_v the_o history_n of_o his_o time_n speak_v of_o pope_n john_n he_o say_v o_o what_o a_o successor_n have_v bless_v peter_n in_o the_o see_v of_o the_o high_a priesthood_n who_o forget_v the_o office_n of_o humanity_n piety_n and_o of_o a_o shepherd_n live_v a_o tyrannical_a life_n ....._o how_o can_v peter_n think_v that_o the_o estate_n of_o his_o chair_n and_o church_n can_v be_v so_o enormous_o pervert_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n from_o the_o rule_n of_o righteousness_n he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v praise_v because_o it_o seem_v he_o sit_v not_o in_o the_o pestilential_a chair_n and_o ad_fw-la an._n 1344._o he_o say_v o_o god_n how_o great_a avarice_n and_o worship_n of_o idol_n have_v defile_v and_o deform_v the_o church_n how_o can_v or_o how_o will_v peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n or_o their_o successor_n the_o martyr_n and_o teacher_n which_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n and_o abode_n immovable_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o action_n of_o christ_n how_o can_v these_o i_o say_v have_v believe_v that_o in_o our_o time_n the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v so_o famous_a and_o glorious_a can_v be_v make_v filthy_a in_o such_o a_o manner_n with_o the_o pestiserous_a root_n of_o avarice_n alas_o she_o be_v tear_v and_o wound_v in_o all_o her_o member_n and_o none_o be_v for_o bind_v her_o fracture_n none_o to_o comfort_v she_o or_o to_o cure_v her_o wound_n she_o be_v consume_v in_o her_o crime_n she_o be_v fall_v so_o grievous_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o vice_n that_o she_o can_v rise_v by_o herself_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o to_o raise_v she_o all_o have_v go_v astray_o like_o wander_a sheep_n every_o one_o have_v go_v after_o his_o own_o way_n which_o be_v not_o right_a because_o her_o father_n will_v not_o be_v befool_v with_o the_o love_n of_o earthly_a thing_n so_o the_o word_n of_o jeremiah_n be_v fulfil_v from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a all_o be_v set_v on_o covetousness_n and_o the_o word_n of_o micah_n be_v true_a the_o prince_n judge_n for_o gift_n and_o the_o priest_n teach_v for_o a_o reward_n and_o the_o prophet_n divine_a for_o money_n this_o poisonous_a root_n avarice_n with_o its_o small_a branch_n execrable_a simony_n plunder_v theft_n and_o especial_o devour_a usury_n have_v infect_v and_o devoujr_v the_o world_n in_o such_o measure_n that_o john_n have_v speak_v most_o proper_o in_o his_o canonical_a writing_n the_o whole_a world_n lie_v in_o wickedness_n and_o an._n 1345._o at_o that_o time_n the_o secular_a and_o religious_a clergy_n which_o have_v resume_v in_o the_o imperial_a and_o other_o place_n lie_v under_o the_o papal_a interdiction_n do_v obtain_v absolution_n from_o the_o roman_a court_n when_o other_o clark_n do_v continue_v free_o and_o without_o fear_n in_o celebrate_v and_o such_o absolution_n be_v purchase_v easy_o for_o a_o florence_n oh_o how_o lamentable_a and_o execrable_a a_o breach_n be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n at_o this_o time_n that_o say_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v now_o make_v null_n you_o have_v receive_v free_o give_v free_o and_o ad_fw-la an._n 1348._o speak_v of_o the_o same_o papal_a interdiction_n he_o say_v some_o of_o they_o for_o absolution_n of_o man_n and_o for_o reconciliation_n of_o churchyard_n do_v collect_v incredible_a and_o immoderate_a sum_n of_o money_n and_o do_v extort_v from_o they_o which_o be_v to_o be_v absolve_v which_o be_v miserable_a and_o horrible_a to_o be_v speak_v for_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o very_a many_o it_o cause_v scandal_n scruple_n of_o the_o faith_n perplexity_n detriction_n grumble_n infidelity_n clamour_n commotion_n fear_v and_o suspicion_n of_o simoniacal_a wickedness_n for_o they_o say_v the_o clergy_n despise_v tear_n and_o defile_v scatter_v and_o confound_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n they_o divide_v her_o integrity_n they_o wound_v her_o charity_n they_o harden_v her_o benignity_n and_o meekness_n they_o weaken_v her_o zeal_n they_o shut_v up_o her_o liberality_n with_o the_o knot_n of_o covetousness_n by_o withdraw_v she_o from_o voluntary_a gift_n ....._o not_o regard_v the_o curse_n of_o gehazi_n and_o simon_n be_v harden_v in_o their_o wickedness_n oh_o how_o vile_a be_v the_o church_n become_v in_o her_o principal_a member_n all_o beauty_n be_v go_v from_o she_o because_o they_o which_o shall_v enlighten_v she_o with_o true_a doctrine_n do_v darken_v she_o with_o the_o blackness_n of_o error_n and_o mist_n of_o vice_n and_o the_o people_n say_v i_o use_v their_o
yet_o what_o have_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o poor_a apostle_n to_o do_v with_o riches_n i_o say_v if_o they_o will_v consider_v these_o thing_n they_o will_v not_o be_v ambitious_a of_o such_o a_o place_n and_o they_o will_v glad_o leave_v it_o or_o certain_o they_o will_v be_v more_o laborious_a as_o the_o ancient_a apostle_n live_v now_o the_o chief_a highpriest_n which_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n if_o they_o will_v follow_v his_o life_n that_o be_v poverty_n labour_n teach_v cross_a contempt_n of_o life_n or_o if_o they_o will_v remember_v their_o name_n papa_n that_o be_v a_o father_n or_o their_o surname_n most_o holy_a who_o be_v more_o afflict_v on_o earth_n or_o who_o will_v buy_v that_o place_n with_o all_o their_o wealth_n or_o when_o it_o be_v buy_v defend_v it_o with_o poison_n sword_z and_z all_o manner_n of_o violence_n how_o great_a commodity_n shall_v they_o be_v deprive_v of_o if_o they_o have_v any_o wit_n or_o a_o grain_n of_o that_o salt_n where_o of_o christ_n speak_v ........_o i_o be_v late_o at_o a_o theological_a disputation_n whither_o i_o often_o go_v and_o one_o ask_v what_o authority_n of_o divine_a scripture_n command_v to_o burn_v a_o heretic_n rather_o than_o to_o convince_v he_o with_o reason_n a_o old_a grave_a man_n you_o may_v by_o his_o stately_a countenance_n have_v know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a say_v with_o great_a indignation_n the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v give_v this_o law_n haereticum_fw-la hominem_fw-la post_fw-la unam_fw-la et_fw-la alteram_fw-la admonitionem_fw-la de_fw-la vita_fw-la and_o when_o he_o thunder_v the_o word_n again_o and_o again_o and_o many_o do_v admire_v what_o have_v happen_v unto_o he_o at_o last_o he_o explain_v himself_o and_o say_v put_v out_o the_o life_n of_o a_o heretic_n some_o do_v laugh_v and_o yet_o many_o do_v commend_v it_o as_o a_o very_a theological_a commentary_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o erasmus_n in_o epist_n adjod_n jon._n date_a lovan_n 6._o id_fw-la may_v an._n 1521_o show_v the_o lamentation_n of_o all_o good_a man_n for_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o general_a corruption_n in_o doctrine_n aswell_o as_o in_o manner_n and_o how_o they_o earnest_o deal_v for_o reformation_n but_o can_v effectuate_v nothing_o because_o of_o the_o covetousness_n of_o prelate_n of_o he_o more_o follow_v 25_o joh._n ludovic_n vives_z bear_v in_o valentia_n and_o live_v at_o that_o time_n in_o lovan_n at_o the_o entreaty_n of_o erasmus_n do_v revise_v and_o collation_n sundry_a old_a copy_n of_o augustin_n book_n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la and_o write_v annotation_n or_o commentary_n upon_o they_o where_o he_o note_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o time_n as_o lib._n 2._o c._n 21._o not_o penult_n he_o say_v what_o will_v you_o do_v with_o these_o prince_n of_o the_o school_n which_o as_o yet_o know_v not_o that_o paul_n write_v not_o in_o latin_a but_o in_o greek_a as_o also_o it_o be_v a_o very_a presumptuous_a thing_n that_o these_o which_o be_v altogether_o ignorant_a of_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v will_v so_o often_o dispute_v foolish_o and_o determine_v more_o foolish_o of_o the_o signification_n of_o word_n which_o they_o do_v everywhere_o both_o in_o dialectic_a and_o philosophy_n where_o as_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v nothing_o less_o than_o grammarian_n and_o take_v it_o very_o ill_a if_o any_o who_o be_v a_o little_a more_o learned_a will_v but_o speak_v of_o a_o word_n in_o these_o arts._n lib._n 7._o c._n 26._o augustin_n speak_v of_o the_o priest_n of_o cibele_n which_o in_o his_o time_n be_v wont_a to_o go_v a_o beg_n from_o the_o people_n where_o upon_o they_o do_v live_v lewd_o and_o nota_fw-la a_o vives_z show_n that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o cicero_n the_o beg_n of_o these_o priest_n be_v restrain_v unto_o some_o day_n because_o superstition_n possess_v man_n mind_n and_o empty_v their_o house_n and_o he_o add_v what_o if_o augustin_n and_o cicero_n see_v the_o wealthy_a and_o most_o large_a society_n beg_v from_o they_o a_o farthing_n who_o shall_v rather_o distribute_v of_o their_o own_o where_o with_o they_o abound_v and_o overslow_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o giver_n bit_v dry_a bread_n and_o drink_v watr_n out_o of_o a_o earthen_a vessel_n for_o which_o he_o must_v work_v hard_o both_o night_n and_o day_n for_o himself_o and_o child_n and_o the_o rich_a beggar_n surfeit_v himself_o with_o white_a bread_n woodcock_n and_o good_a strong_a wine_n lib._n 8._o c._n 27._o augustin_n say_v what_o believer_n ever_o hear_v a_o priest_n ....._o say_v in_o his_o prayer_n i_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n unto_o thou_o peter_z or_o paul_n or_o cyprian_a see_v at_o their_o monument_n it_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n who_o have_v make_v these_o to_o be_v man_n and_o martyr_n ....._o we_o worship_v not_o therefore_o our_o martyr_n ...._o nor_o turn_v we_o the_o villainy_n of_o the_o god_n unto_o their_o sacrifice_n vives_z add_v but_o now_o the_o custom_n be_v when_o a_o holy_a day_n be_v keep_v unto_o christ_n who_o have_v redeem_v mankind_n by_o his_o death_n to_o make_v play_n unto_o the_o people_n little_o differ_v from_o the_o ancient_a comedy_n albeit_o i_o speak_v no_o more_o whosoever_o hear_v will_v think_v it_o filthy_a enough_o they_o make_v sport_n in_o that_o which_o be_v most_o serious_a they_o laugh_v at_o judas_n glory_v most_o foolish_o that_o he_o have_v betray_v christ_n there_o the_o disciple_n fly_v away_o when_o the_o soldier_n pursue_v they_o and_o that_o not_o without_o the_o loud_a derision_n both_o of_o the_o actor_n and_o beholder_n there_o peter_n cut_v off_o the_o ear_n of_o malchus_n and_o the_o black_a band_n clap_v their_o hand_n as_o if_o the_o captivity_n of_o christ_n be_v well_o revenge_v and_o a_o little_a thereafter_o he_o that_o fight_v so_o stout_o be_v afrigt_v at_o the_o question_n of_o a_o girl_n deni_v his_o master_n then_o the_o multitude_n scorn_v the_o maid_n and_o hiss_v at_o petet_n among_o so_o many_o laughing_n and_o so_o many_o foolery_n christ_n only_o be_v sad_a and_o while_o he_o endeavour_v to_o fetch_v up_o sad_a affection_n i_o know_v not_o how_o but_o not_o only_o there_o but_o also_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o religion_n he_o cool_v to_o the_o great_a crime_n and_o impiety_n not_o only_o of_o the_o beholder_n and_o actor_n but_o of_o the_o priest_n who_o will_v have_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v lib._n 11._o c._n 18._o b._n vives_z say_v augustin_n say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o of_o the_o art_n of_o rhetoric_n in_o paul_n word_n it_o be_v tolerable_a because_o augustin_n say_v it_o but_o if_o any_o of_o we_o will_v say_v it_o they_o will_v cry_v out_o against_o it_o not_o as_o a_o crime_n only_o but_o as_o heresy_n so_o ready_a at_o hand_n be_v heresy_n they_o talk_v of_o nothing_o soon_o nor_o more_o easy_o when_o themselves_o be_v full_a of_o they_o lib._n 18_o c._n 22._o augustin_n say_v rome_n be_v build_v as_o another_o babylon_n and_o as_o the_o daughter_n of_o the_o former_a babylon_n vives_z say_v the_o apostle_n peter_n call_v rome_n babylon_n as_o also_o hierom_n expound_v it_o in_o the_o life_n of_o mark_n and_o write_v to_o marcelia_n think_v that_o no_o other_o babylon_n be_v describe_v by_o john_n in_o the_o revelation_n but_o the_o city_n rome_n but_o now_o it_o have_v lay_v off_o so_o odious_a a_o name_n for_o no_o confuse_a thing_n or_o riff-raffe_a be_v there_o every_o thing_n be_v distinguish_v by_o certain_a law_n so_o that_o albeit_o every_o thing_n may_v be_v sell_v and_o buy_v there_o yet_o you_o shall_v do_v nothing_o without_o law_n and_o formality_n even_o of_o the_o most_o holy_a law_n and_o c._n 31._o no._n c._n vives_z say_v there_o be_v mention_n of_o this_o prophet_n habacuc_v in_o dan._n 14._o that_o he_o bring_v his_o dinner_n from_o judea_n to_o babylon_n unto_o daniel_n but_o augustin_n use_v not_o this_o testimony_n for_o proof_n of_o his_o time_n because_o that_o story_n of_o bell_n and_o all_o that_o 14_o chapter_n and_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n be_v apocrypha_fw-la nor_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n nor_o be_v translate_v by_o the_o lxx_o lib._n 15._o c._n 11._o a_o augustin_n just_o deride_v they_o which_o give_v more_o credit_n unto_o translation_n then_o unto_o these_o language_n from_o which_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n have_v flow_v into_o other_o and_o lib._n 21._o c._n 24._o d._n paul_n signify_v that_o no_o man_n can_v boast_v that_o he_o be_v make_v glorious_a by_o his_o own_o merit_n but_o that_o it_o be_v whole_o by_o god_n benefit_n he_o have_v many_o such_o passage_n that_o be_v blot_v out_o by_o index_n expurgator_n 25._o in_o a_o word_n there_o be_v no_o nation_n that_o do_v not_o oppose_v their_o grievance_n at_o that_o time_n against_o the_o impious_a invention_n of_o the_o roman_a
that_o they_o will_v not_o judge_v amiss_o of_o carolstad_n for_o albeit_o he_o have_v not_o attain_v what_o he_o will_v yet_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o matter_n he_o have_v not_o err_v much_o and_o albeit_o the_o anabaptist_n know_v what_o difference_n be_v between_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o carolstad_n in_o this_o particular_a yet_o they_o follow_v carolstade_n and_o spread_v his_o book_n far_o and_o wide_o after_o the_o divulge_v of_o these_o book_n zuinglius_fw-la write_v unto_o matt._n alber_n pastor_n at_o reutlinga_n say_v hitherto_o we_o have_v err_v from_o the_o but_o or_o mark_n neither_o leo_n juda_n nor_o other_o brethren_n nor_o i_o do_v altogether_o disallow_v the_o judgement_n of_o carolstad_n but_o many_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o obscurity_n of_o his_o word_n and_o his_o immoderate_a scoff_v especial_o our_o tigurine_n because_o he_o have_v a_o little_a depart_v from_o the_o way_n wherein_o he_o shall_v have_v walk_v and_o then_o he_o teach_v that_o to_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o other_o but_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v break_v and_o die_v for_o we_o and_o he_o prove_v this_o from_o john_n vi_o where_o it_o be_v write_v of_o spiritual_a eat_n whereof_o the_o sign_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 2._o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n where_o he_o expound_v be_v by_o signify_v as_o the_o follow_a word_n do_v evince_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o 3._o from_o the_o word_n of_o luke_n this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o very_a blood_n etc._n etc._n likewise_o the_o divine_n at_o strawsburg_n to_o wit_n wolfgang_n capito_n in_o october_n and_o mart._n bucer_n with_o who_o all_o the_o other_o minister_n do_v subscribe_v in_o december_n of_o the_o same_o year_n do_v by_o their_o publish_a paper_n exhort_v all_o man_n to_o leave_v strife_n and_o think_v upon_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n that_o be_v as_o bucerspeake_v we_o shall_v eat_v the_o bread_n &_o drink_v the_o wine_n and_o then_o come_v to_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o we_o shall_v so_o eat_v the_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o wine_n that_o we_o remember_v how_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n be_v once_o offer_v for_o we_o and_o so_o we_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n spiritual_o luther_n be_v vex_v with_o the_o success_n of_o carolstad_n doctrine_n and_o in_o wrath_n write_v in_o the_o same_o december_n unto_o amsdorf_n say_v we_o have_v no_o other_o cause_n but_o to_o be_v humble_v for_o carolstad_n venom_n spread_v very_o wide_a and_o unto_o his_o opinion_n be_v join_v zuinglius_fw-la of_o zurik_n leo_n judaeus_n and_o many_o other_o affirm_v constant_o that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v only_a bread_n as_o in_o the_o market_n etc._n etc._n the_o next_o year_n this_o contest_v grow_v hot_a betwixt_o luther_n and_o jo._n bugenhagius_n in_o pomer_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o oecolampade_n on_o the_o other_o in_o a_o three_o piece_n which_z zuinglius_fw-la write_v in_o october_n answer_v to_o bugenhagius_n he_o prove_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v not_o new_a as_o the_o other_o have_v call_v it_o but_o the_o very_a mind_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o father_n and_o that_o they_o have_v not_o expound_v the_o trope_n albeit_o they_o have_v speak_v with_o trope_n and_o he_o profess_v he_o know_v there_o be_v a_o trope_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n but_o he_o know_v not_o in_o what_o word_n the_o trope_n be_v until_o he_o have_v read_v a_o epistle_n of_o a_o batavian_n teach_v that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o speak_v not_o of_o a_o carnal_a understanding_n because_o the_o text_n press_v another_o thing_n and_o who_o will_v say_v that_o the_o flesh_n profit_v he_o make_v two_o way_n of_o salvation_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o abr._n schultet_n testify_v that_o when_o carolstade_n see_v the_o book_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o oecolampade_n he_o forsake_v his_o interpretation_n of_o the_o particle_n this._n afterward_o more_o oil_n be_v add_v unto_o this_o flamme_n when_o brentius_n hear_v of_o the_o ubiquity_n which_o faber_n stapulensis_n have_v imagine_v i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o handle_v controversy_n but_o of_o this_o purpose_n for_o clear_v the_o history_n i_o add_v two_o passage_n one_o from_o ab._n schultet_fw-la annal_n ad_fw-la an._n 1525_o oecolampad_v at_o basile_n with_o his_o colleague_n teach_v the_o same_o with_o zuinglius_fw-la when_o it_o be_v report_v that_o he_o be_v a_o carolstadian_a his_o friend_n do_v entreat_v he_o to_o declare_v his_o mind_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o same_o year_n he_o publish_v a_o book_n of_o the_o genuine_a exposition_n of_o the_o lord_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n therein_o he_o show_v that_o oral_a eat_n have_v its_o beginning_n from_o pe._n lombard_n or_o gratian_n or_o if_o it_o be_v more_o ancient_a from_o damascen_n the_o late_a that_o lombard_n in_o condemn_v they_o of_o heresy_n who_o say_v that_o christ_n use_v the_o same_o phrase_n in_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o paul_n have_v use_v in_o these_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n do_v condemn_v all_o the_o ancient_a teacher_n which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n then_o he_o answer_v the_o objection_n what_o thing_n be_v above_o our_o capacity_n man_n shall_v not_o search_v iherefore_o we_o shall_v not_o search_v into_o the_o sacrament_n and_o he_o prove_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o of_o the_o sort_n of_o incomprehensible_a thing_n see_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v no_o miracle_n nor_o any_o thing_n exceed_v man_n capacity_n three_o he_o wipeth-off_a the_o calumny_n of_o some_o preacher_n who_o clamorous_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v deny_v and_o christ_n god_n head_n and_o all_o christianity_n be_v overthrow_v by_o they_o who_o deny_v oral_a eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v speak_v in_o such_o a_o way_n lest_o any_o take_v occasion_n of_o error_n and_o he_o will_v have_v some_o passage_n a_o little_a dark_o to_o the_o end_n that_o some_o see_v shall_v not_o see_v and_o knowledge_n or_o revelation_n shall_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o god_n mercy_n then_o he_o come_v to_o the_o point_n and_o prove_v the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o be_v speak_v with_o the_o same_o trope_n as_o these_o of_o paul_n therock_n be_v christ_n this_o be_v not_o a_o strange_a exposition_n nor_o be_v the_o phrase_n seldom_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o nothing_o be_v more_o inconvenient_a than_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o synusiast_n a_o trope_n certain_o be_v in_o the_o word_n and_o many_o absurdity_n follow_v otherwise_o all_o the_o father_n be_v for_o a_o trope_n in_o these_o word_n he_o confirm_v the_o same_o and_o refute_v the_o contrary_a by_o many_o reason_n according_a to_o scripture_n the_o senate_n of_o basile_n ask_v erasmus_n his_o judgement_n of_o that_o book_n he_o answer_v he_o have_v read_v it_o and_o in_o his_o judgement_n it_o be_v learned_o and_o well_o write_v and_o i_o will_v say_v say_v he_o very_a christian_n if_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v call_v christian_n which_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n from_o who_o judgement_n it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o decline_v the_o other_o passage_n that_o i_o add_v be_v in_o osiander_n cent._n 16._o lib._n 1._o cap._n 36._o where_n speak_v of_o these_o three_o carolstade_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o oecolampade_n he_o say_v the_o judgement_n of_o all_o these_o three_o divine_n be_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o give_v in_o the_o holy_a supper_n with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o be_v present_v above_o only_o in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o no_o where_o else_o before_o the_o last_o day_n in_o after_o time_n say_v he_o caluin_n do_v seem_v to_o reject_v their_o exposition_n but_o indeed_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n with_o they_o for_o in_o his_o agreement_n with_o the_o divine_n of_o zurik_n he_o write_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v as_o far_o distant_a from_o we_o as_o the_o heaven_n be_v distant_a from_o the_o earth_n but_o deceitful_o do_v calvin_n teach_v the_o same_o impiety_n in_o other_o &_o smooth_a word_n so_o that_o he_o blind_v the_o eye_n of_o many_o learned_a and_o good_a man_n and_o draw_v they_o into_o zuinglianisme_n so_o far_o he_o i_o mark_v these_o two_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v how_o these_o do_v prevaricate_v or_o wrangle_v which_o have_v be_v for_o consubstantiation_n they_o will_v not_o understand_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v speak_v against_o they_o and_o as_o if_o blue_a green_a and_o purple_a be_v all_o white_a because_o they_o be_v not_o all_o black_a so_o how_o beit_n
quench_v the_o thirst_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o deal_v with_o we_o as_o he_o do_v with_o the_o father_n he_o say_v also_o god_n declare_v his_o will_n by_o dream_n as_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o himself_o and_o have_v give_v he_o a_o command_n to_o kill_v all_o wicked_a man_n and_o pull_v down_o all_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n he_o teach_v also_o that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v common_a and_o all_o shall_v have_v alike_o freedom_n and_o liberty_n without_o all_o subiectjon_n sleidan_n comment_fw-fr lib._n 3._o &_o 5._o in_o apile_n 1525._o the_o countrie-people_n in_o suevia_n by_o the_o river_n danube_n be_v delude_v with_o such_o error_n begin_v to_o refuse_v obedience_n and_o they_o demand_v 1._o liberty_n to_o choose_v their_o minister_n that_o will_v preach_v the_o word_n without_o man_n tradition_n and_o decree_n 2._o liberty_n from_o all_o tieth_n except_o only_a corn_n and_o these_o to_o be_v divide_v at_o the_o discretion_n of_o good_a man_n a_o part_n unto_o minister_n part_n unto_o the_o poor_a and_o part_n unto_o public_a business_n 3._o it_o be_v not_o equitable_a that_o heretofore_o they_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o condition_n of_o slave_n see_v they_o be_v make_v free_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n they_o profess_v they_o do_v not_o cast_v off_o magistrate_n but_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v that_o bondage_n unless_o it_o be_v clear_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v reasonable_a 4._o it_o be_v not_o reason_n that_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o take_v wild_a beast_n or_o fish_n especial_o when_o the_o beast_n destroy_v their_o cornefield_n from_o the_o beginning_n god_n have_v give_v unto_o man_n power_n over_o all_o live_a creature_n 5._o it_o be_v a_o great_a prejudice_n of_o the_o people_n that_o wood_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o afew_n man_n 6._o they_o demand_v that_o their_o prince_n or_o master_n will_v moderate_v their_o daily_a burden_n of_o service_n according_a to_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o lay_v no_o more_o upon_o they_o than_o be_v crave_v of_o old_a etc._n etc._n ibid._n albeit_o the_o attempt_n of_o these_o man_n be_v alike_o against_o popish_a master_n and_o other_o which_o be_v desirous_a of_o reformation_n yet_o i_o can_v not_o find_v that_o any_o popish_a person_n do_v endeavour_v to_o convince_v they_o by_o information_n luther_n do_v publish_v book_n to_o refute_v they_o many_o time_n before_o they_o do_v publish_v their_o demand_n he_o dissuade_v they_o from_o sedition_n as_o a_o most_o fearful_a sin_n not_o only_o in_o the_o external_a fact_n but_o even_o to_o be_v speak_v or_o think_v upon_o after_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o demand_n he_o tell_v they_o they_o do_v wicked_o in_o cloak_v their_o rebellion_n with_o the_o pretext_n of_o sincee_a doctrine_n and_o equity_n see_v god_n have_v command_v to_o obey_v prince_n and_o master_n then_o he_o sift_v their_o demand_n several_o and_o show_v that_o some_o of_o they_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o equity_n and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o have_v any_o reason_n in_o they_o they_o shall_v be_v examine_v by_o prudent_a man_n but_o they_o shall_v not_o move_v broil_n if_o their_o master_n will_v not_o let_v they_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o may_v go_v in_o quietness_n where_o they_o may_v have_v it_o but_o they_o shall_v not_o use_v violence_n against_o their_o master_n he_o write_v also_o unto_o prince_n and_o especial_o unto_o the_o prelate_n that_o their_o hinder_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o provocation_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o their_o lay_n of_o intolerable_a burden_n on_o their_o subject_n for_o their_o own_o pleasure_n and_o prodigality_n be_v also_o offensive_a unto_o god_n and_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o use_v all_o mean_n of_o peace_n rather_o than_o force_v see_v the_o issue_n of_o war_n be_v uncertain_a and_o arm_n be_v soon_o take_v up_o then_o can_v be_v lay_v off_o when_o they_o have_v take_v arm_n he_o write_v the_o three_o time_n exhort_v both_o to_o take_v away_o their_o controverfy_v by_o treaty_n of_o good_a and_o prudent_a man_n many_o other_o preacher_n do_v also_o publish_v book_n show_v the_o craft_n of_o satan_n in_o raise_v such_o broil_n at_o that_o time_n and_o that_o these_o shall_v not_o be_v impute_v unto_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o the_o adversary_n of_o truth_n do_v cry_v and_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o man_n for_o their_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o the_o gospel_n see_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o heathen_n say_v that_o all_o their_o trouble_n come_v upon_o they_o for_o the_o christian_a religion_n whereas_o god_n be_v offend_v for_o their_o idolatry_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o they_o prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o tertullian_n in_o apolog._n and_o cyprian_a contra_fw-la demetr_v augustin_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la and_o other_o abr._n scult_a ann._n ad_fw-la an._n 1525._o when_o neither_o prince_n will_v yield_v unto_o a_o treaty_n nor_o the_o bower_n will_v lay_v down_o arm_n luther_n write_v a_o four_o book_n exhort_v all_o man_n as_o for_o the_o quench_v a_o common_a fire_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o the_o rebel_n and_o kill_v they_o which_o have_v so_o base_o deny_v obedience_n unto_o their_o master_n and_o have_v begin_v to_o usurp_v other_o man_n possession_n and_o do_v cloak_n so_o vile_a villainy_n with_o the_o name_n of_o christianity_n nevertheless_o these_o villain_n grow_v into_o a_o huge_a multitude_n and_o divide_v themselves_o into_o three_o army_n one_o at_o biberac_n another_o at_o algovia_n and_o the_o three_o at_o the_o lake_n of_o constance_n they_o take_v some_o town_n as_o winsbergh_n and_o wirtsburgh_n they_o kill_v some_o noble_a man_n as_o the_o court_n of_o helfenstein_n most_o unworthy_o the_o prince_n that_o go_v against_o they_o be_v john_n elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o his_o uncle_n george_n philip_n of_o hassia_n henry_n duke_n of_o brunswik_n etc._n etc._n in_o some_o place_n when_o they_o be_v put_v to_o flight_n they_o run_v into_o the_o river_n there_o be_v kill_v of_o they_o in_o several_a place_n 50000._o some_o write_v 100000_o and_o the_o chief_a enticer_n weet_v take_v and_o behead_v xxii_o notwithstanding_o these_o broil_n it_o please_v god_n to_o spread_v the_o reformation_n progress_fw-la the_o reformation_n reformation_n the_o same_o year_n luther_n at_o that_o time_n do_v first_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o the_o german_a language_n and_o do_v ordain_v a_o minister_n without_o the_o popish_a rite_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la do_v also_o forsake_v the_o latin_a language_n and_o the_o rite_n albert_n marquis_n of_o branbeburgh_n be_v entitle_v master_n of_o the_o teutonick_n order_n but_o that_o year_n have_v war_n with_o the_o king_n of_o pole_n for_o some_o town_n of_o prussia_n and_o see_v no_o aid_n from_o the_o emperor_n be_v content_a to_o agree_v upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v the_o king_n as_o superior_a and_o possess_v prussia_n under_o the_o tittle_n of_o a_o dukedom_n and_o then_o he_o authorize_v the_o reform_a religion_n through_o out_o that_o province_n gustavus_n king_n of_o sweden_n send_v for_o all_o the_o prelate_n to_o come_v unto_o his_o palace_n and_o there_o without_o any_o noise_n give_v they_o in_o their_o option_n to_o continue_v in_o their_o place_n and_o profess_v the_o reform_a religion_n or_o then_o to_o leave_v the_o country_n some_o give_v he_o their_o oath_n of_o obedience_n and_o other_o go_v whether_o they_o please_v william_n landsgrave_n of_o hassia_n establish_v the_o reform_a religion_n within_o his_o jurisdiction_n so_o it_o be_v establish_v at_o gorlik_n &_o lauba_n in_o lusatia_n in_o rhetia_n alone_o be_v reckon_v 41._o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o do_v philip_n count_n of_o hanove_n christopher_n and_o antony_n count_v of_o altenburgh_n &_o delmenhorst_n conrade_n of_o tecklenburgh_n &_o linga_n and_o baltasar_n lord_n of_o esens_n &_o witmund_n necessary_a uniformity_n in_o circumstantial_o be_v not_o necessary_a all_o within_o their_o territory_n and_o so_o do_v many_o other_o free_a town_n in_o the_o year_n precede_v a_o motion_n be_v make_v to_o assemble_v a_o synod_n of_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n for_o establish_v a_o uniformity_n in_o rite_n or_o circumstantial_a ceremony_n luther_n oppose_v it_o assert_v that_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a albeit_o it_o be_v propound_v in_o a_o good_a zeal_n yet_o it_o have_v no_o precedent_n for_o even_o in_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostl_v they_o do_v treat_v more_o of_o work_n and_o tradition_n than_o of_o faith_n and_o there_o they_o have_v dispute_v for_o the_o most_o part_n concern_v opinion_n &_o question_n yet_o he_o be_v no_o less_o suspicious_a of_o the_o name_n of_o a_o council_n as_o of_o the_o name_n
voice_n of_o another_o this_o church_n make_v not_o law_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o unto_o tradition_n of_o man_n which_o have_v the_o tittle_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v not_o tie_v if_o they_o agree_v not_o with_o god_n word_n only_a christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o if_o any_o say_v there_o be_v another_o way_n of_o salvation_n or_o of_o expiate_a sin_n he_o deni_v christ_n it_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v by_o testimony_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v real_o and_o bodily_a the_o rite_n of_o the_o mass_n where_o christ_n be_v represent_v &_o offer_v unto_o the_o father_n for_o the_o live_n &_o dead_a be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o scripture_n and_o contumelious_a unto_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o christ_n have_v offer_v for_o we_o we_o may_v pray_v unto_o christ_n only_o as_o the_o mediator_n and_o advocate_n of_o mankind_n with_o the_o father_n it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v any_o place_n where_o soul_n be_v purge_v after_o this_o life_n therefore_o prayer_n and_o all_o these_o ceremony_n and_o yearly_a exequy_n that_o be_v bestow_v on_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o waxecandl_v and_o torch_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n do_v help_v nothing_o it_o be_v contrary_a unto_o senpture_n to_o set_v up_o image_n or_o statue_n for_o use_n of_o worship_n therefore_o if_o any_o such_o be_v in_o a_o church_n they_o shall_v be_v remove_v marriage_n be_v not_o forbid_v unto_o any_o sort_n of_o man_n but_o for_o eschue_a fornication_n it_o be_v command_v and_o permit_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n unto_o every_o one_o and_o unclean_a and_o filthy_a single_a life_n become_v the_o order_n of_o priest_n lest_o of_o any_o man_n when_o these_o letter_n be_v divulge_v the_o people_n of_o lucern_n vran_n suik_n unterwald_n tugy_a glarea_fw-la friburgh_n &_o soloturn_n write_v unto_o bern_n exhort_v they_o to_o cease_v from_o that_o purpose_n and_o to_o remember_v their_o league_n as_o for_o they_o they_o will_v send_v none_o thither_o nor_o suffer_v any_o to_o come_v i._o bidem_fw-la xxv_o nevertheless_o the_o day_n be_v keep_v at_o bern._n none_o of_o the_o bb_n come_v nor_o send_v deputy_n come_v from_o basile_n schafuse_v zurick_n abbecella_n sangall_n mulh●se_n and_o rhaetia_n their_o nighbour_n as_o also_o from_o strawsburgh_n ulma_n augsburg_n lindaw_n constance_n and_o isna_n among_o these_o be_v zwinglius_fw-la oecolampade_n bucer_n capito_n blaurer_n etc._n etc._n among_o the_o opponent_n the_o chiese_n be_v conrade_n treger_n a_o augustinian_a he_o will_v not_o bring_v his_o argument_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o dispute_n will_v not_o permit_v any_o other_o authority_n because_o it_o be_v so_o order_v by_o the_o publication_n wherefore_o treger_n go_v away_o on_o the_o 26_o day_n of_o january_n 1528._o progress_n of_o reformation_n an._n 1528._o year_n 1528._o the_o dispute_n be_v end_v and_o then_o altar_n image_n and_o mass_n be_v forbid_v in_o berne_n the_o day_n and_o year_n of_o reformation_n be_v mark_v with_o golden_a letter_n in_o a_o public_a place_n for_o memorial_n unto_o posterity_n the_o like_a reformation_n be_v at_o basile_n erasmus_n write_v of_o it_o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la andr._n cruci_fw-la episc_n plocens_fw-la date_a friburgh_n an._n 1529._o thus_o no_o violence_n be_v use_v against_o any_o man_n person_n or_o good_n only_o they_o seek_v a_o burgher-master_n as_o a_o chief_a enemy_n of_o reformation_n and_o he_o escape_v in_o a_o boat_n they_o break_v down_o all_o image_n in_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n erasmus_n be_v present_a and_o as_o he_o write_v he_o do_v admire_v that_o whereas_o it_o have_v be_v report_v how_o s._n francis_n have_v smite_v a_o man_n with_o madness_n for_o scorn_v his_o five_o wound_n and_o other_o diu●or_a saint_n have_v revenge_v some_o reproach_v word_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o all_o do_v at_o that_o time_n revenge_v the_o contempt_n of_o their_o image_n pe._n soave_fw-it say_v they_o of_o geneve_n and_o constance_n and_o other_o nighbour_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o berne_n as_o also_o strawsburgh_n after_o a_o public_a disputation_n make_v a_o ordinance_n to_o forsake_v the_o mass_n or_o at_o least_o to_o leave_v it_o until_o the_o maintainer_n of_o it_o will_v prove_v that_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o this_o they_o do_v say_v he_o albeit_o the_o senate_n of_o the_o empire_n at_o spira_n have_v by_o their_o messenger_n forbid_v they_o as_o not_o belong_v unto_o they_o nor_o unto_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o make_v any_o innovation_n in_o religion_n but_o only_o unto_o a_o general_n or_o national_a council_n yea_o and_o italy_n say_v he_o when_o for_o the_o space_n of_o two_o year_n there_o have_v be_v no_o court_n in_o rome_n and_o all_o these_o calamity_n under_o which_o they_o be_v lie_v be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o god_n judgement_n for_o rhe_n abuse_v of_o that_o government_n do_v glad_o hearken_v unto_o a_o reformation_n and_o in_o their_o private_a house_n namely_o at_o fuenza_n within_o the_o pope_n territory_n they_o do_v preach_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o number_n of_o these_o who_o other_o do_v call_v lutheran_n but_o they_o call_v themselves_o evangelici_fw-la do_v increase_n daily_o xxvi_o in_o march_n an._n 1529._o be_v a_o diet_n at_o spira_n the_o bb_n and_o their_o party_n 1529._o 1529._o think_v to_o have_v sever_v the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n from_o the_o city_n in_o contemplation_n of_o the_o variance_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o do_v perceive_v the_o craft_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o disappoint_v they_o then_o ferdinand_n exclude_v the_o depute_n of_o strawsburgh_n from_o sit_v in_o the_o diet_n they_o protest_v that_o if_o they_o be_v displace_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n they_o will_v bear_v no_o part_n of_o the_o common_a charge_n so_o they_o be_v restore_v ro_o their_o place_n after_o much_o debate_n in_o cause_n of_o religion_n at_o last_o it_o be_v decree_v thus_o they_o who_o have_v observe_v the_o emperor_n decree_n let_v they_o observe_v it_o until_o the_o general_n council_n these_o who_o have_v depart_v and_o can_v not_o change_v again_o for_o fear_n of_o sedition_n let_v they_o continue_v and_o change_v no_o more_o until_o the_o council_n their_o doctrine_n which_o teach_v otherwise_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n than_o the_o church_n do_v shall_v not_o be_v receive_v nor_o shall_v the_o mass_n be_v abolish_v nor_o in_o such_o place_n where_o this_o new_a doctrine_n be_v receive_v shall_v any_o man_n be_v hinder_v to_o go_v unto_o the_o mass_n if_o he_o please_v minister_n shall_v preach_v according_a to_o the_o interpretation_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n refer_v all_o disputable_a question_n unto_o the_o council_n let_v all_o state_n keep_v common_a peace_n neither_o any_o take_v the_o defence_n of_o another_o subject_n all_o under_o pain_n of_o forfeiture_n this_o decree_n be_v oppose_v by_o john_n duke_n of_o saxony_n george_n marquis_n of_o brandeburgh_n ernest_n and_o francis_n dd._n of_o luneburgh_n the_o landgrave_n and_o count_n of_o anhalt_n aprile_a 19_o they_o protest_v that_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o obey_v this_o decree_n because_o it_o be_v contrary_a unto_o a_o former_a at_o spire_n where_o with_o consent_n of_o all_o party_n every_o man_n have_v religion_n permit_v free_o until_o a_o general_a council_n and_o as_o that_o be_v enact_v with_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o so_o it_o can_v not_o be_v violate_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o and_o whereas_o there_o have_v be_v dissension_n for_o religion_n it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o diet_n at_o norinbergh_n who_o have_v heen_n the_o causer_n thereof_o both_o by_o confession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o the_o grievance_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o no_o redress_n be_v as_o yet_o make_v of_o these_o grievance_n ......_o and_o there_o fore_o they_o will_v answer_v for_o this_o their_o protest_n both_o open_o before_o all_o man_n and_o unto_o the_o emperor_n himself_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n till_o a_o general_n or_o national_a council_n be_v call_v they_o will_v do_v nothing_o that_o shall_v deserve_v just_a reproof_n unto_o this_o protestation_n some_o city_n do_v subscribe_v namely_o strawsburgh_n norimbergh_n ulme_n constance_n ruteling_n protestant_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o wood_n protestant_n winssem_fw-la mean_v lindave_v campedon_n hailbrun_n isna_n wisseburg_n norling_n and_o sangall_n this_o be_v the_o original_n of_o that_o title_n protestant_n which_o afterward_o become_v so_o famous_a the_o emperor_n be_v then_o in_o italy_n and_o be_v not_o content_a with_o this_o protestation_n as_o neither_o with_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o protestant_n at_o
place_n it_o seem_v not_o expedient_a to_o be_v in_o italy_n but_o in_o germany_n where_o the_o controversy_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n nor_o think_v they_o it_o reasonable_a to_o oblige_v themselves_o by_o oath_n to_o observe_v the_o decree_n absolute_o for_o that_o be_v contrary_a unto_o christian_a liberty_n unless_o they_o know_v what_o be_v to_o be_v the_o form_n of_o the_o council_n who_o be_v moderator_n especial_o that_o the_o party_n defendant_n be_v not_o mederator_n whether_o the_o act_n be_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o tradition_n or_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n alone_o ibid._n in_o the_o next_o year_n pope_n clemens_n die_v but_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n thus_o the_o liberty_n of_o religion_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o emperor_n xxx_o an._n 1533._o george_n duke_n of_o saxony_n banish_v out_o of_o lipsia_n 1533._o 1533._o all_o who_o will_v not_o go_v to_o mass_n luther_n hear_v of_o this_o ordinance_n write_v unto_o the_o protestant_n there_o exhort_v they_o to_o suffer_v death_n rather_o than_o do_v against_o conscience_n and_o he_o call_v duke_n george_n a_o apostle_n of_o satan_n george_n accuse_v luther_n before_o the_o elector_n not_o only_o that_o he_o have_v revile_v he_o but_o have_v stir_v his_o subject_n unto_o rebellion_n the_o elector_n charge_v luther_n to_o make_v his_o clear_a purgation_n or_o he_o must_v suffer_v luther_n publish_v a_o book_n declare_v that_o he_o have_v exhort_v the_o lipsianes_n not_o to_o resist_v their_o prince_n but_o rather_o to_o suffer_v which_o concern_v not_o rebellion_n jo._n sleidan_n come_v lib._n 9_o that_o year_n erasmus_n publish_v a_o treatise_n de_fw-fr amabili_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la concordia_fw-la but_o this_o neutral_a form_n please_v neither_o papist_n nor_o protestant_n and_o the_o next_o year_n luther_n accuse_v he_o that_o he_o do_v but_o mock_v religion_n and_o turn_v it_o all_o into_o doubt_n sport_v himself_o with_o ambiguous_a word_n whereas_o religion_n require_v plainness_n and_o cleareness_n osiand_n epit._n cent_n 16._o lib._n 2._o c._n 26._o xxx_o the_o franciscan_a friar_n be_v in_o danger_n at_o orleans_n an._n 1534._o upon_o france_n a_o craft_n of_o the_o franciscanes_n in_o france_n this_o occasion_n the_o praetor_n wife_n by_o testament_n will_v that_o she_o shall_v be_v bury_v without_o pomp_n here_o husband_n desirous_a to_o satisfy_v here_o will_n have_v a_o care_n to_o bury_v she_o beside_o her_o father_n and_o grandfather_n in_o the_o cloister_n without_o show_n and_o he_o give_v unto_o the_o monk_n six_o crown_n they_o expect_v much_o more_o and_o therefore_o they_o divisea_n way_n to_o make_v up_o their_o loss_n they_o accuse_v the_o defunct_a of_o lutheranism_n and_o cause_n a_o young_a monk_n go_v upon_o the_o roof_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o night_n time_n and_o make_v a_o noise_n a_o exorcist_n adjure_v the_o wicked_a spirit_n to_o declare_v what_o he_o be_v whether_o he_o be_v that_o late_o damn_a soul_n and_o for_o what_o sin_n the_o monk_n be_v inform_v what_o to_o answer_v and_o how_o they_o take_v witness_n the_o fraud_n be_v try_v the_o friar_n be_v imprison_v and_o the_o young_a monk_n reveal_v all_o the_o king_n hear_v this_o vow_v to_o throw_v down_o the_o monastery_n but_o fear_v that_o it_o may_v be_v matter_n of_o joy_n unto_o the_o lutheran_n he_o dismiss_v they_o in_o november_n of_o the_o same_o year_n in_o paris_n and_o other_o place_n of_o france_n even_o within_o the_o king_n palace_n about_o one_o time_n of_o the_o night_n be_v paper_n set_v up_o against_o the_o mass_n and_o other_o point_n of_o religion_n inquiry_n be_v make_v many_o be_v apprehend_v and_o rack_v and_o burn_v in_o the_o next_o year_n king_n francis_n excuse_v germany_n king_n france_n write_v unto_o the_o protestant_n in_o germany_n he_o to_o the_o protestant_n assemble_v at_o smalcald_a that_o see_v they_o intend_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n say_v he_o the_o german_n shall_v not_o blame_v he_o more_o than_o he_o do_v blame_v they_o for_o suppress_v the_o bower_n or_o manzerianes_n and_o he_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o revenge_v himself_o on_o the_o emperor_n crave_v by_o the_o same_o ambassade_n that_o the_o protestant_n will_v make_v a_o league_n with_o he_o for_o reformation_n of_o religion_n so_o he_o pretend_v and_o entreat_v they_o to_o send_v some_o divine_n namely_o melanthon_n to_o dispute_v with_o the_o master_n of_o sorbon_n he_o say_v he_o know_v certain_o that_o many_o superstition_n be_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n by_o insufficiency_n of_o priest_n and_o the_o pope_n assume_v too_o much_o authority_n how_o beit_n by_o man_n law_n he_o be_v the_o high_a of_o all_o bb_n yet_o not_o by_o god_n word_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v alter_v as_o time_n require_v and_o therefore_o he_o be_v desirous_a to_o hear_v reason_v that_o thing_n amiss_o may_v be_v amend_v he_o say_v also_o pope_n julius_n have_v excommunicate_v king_n lewes_n xii_o &_o john_n king_n of_o navarre_n because_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o power_n to_o call_v a_o council_n without_o consent_n of_o christian_a prince_n and_o he_o have_v raise_v monarch_n against_o they_o offer_v their_o kingdom_n as_o a_o prey_n in_o end_n he_o conclude_v suit_v a_o league_n without_o the_o emperor_n they_o answer_v without_o the_o emperor_n they_o can_v and_o will_v do_v nothing_o in_o this_o assembly_n the_o former_a league_n be_v continue_v for_o ten_o year_n and_o into_o it_o be_v receive_v all_o who_o be_v willing_a to_o profess_v the_o augustan_n confession_n so_o that_o they_o be_v 15._o prince_n and_o 30_o city_n cownt_v the_o nassow_n be_v also_o admit_v henry_n viii_o send_v thither_o require_v that_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v a_o council_n which_o will_v not_o abolish_v the_o abuse_n of_o former_a time_n or_o will_v confirm_v the_o pope_n power_n they_o also_o require_v of_o he_o that_o he_o will_v receive_v the_o augustan_n confession_n but_o that_o he_o will_v not_o do_v that_o year_n vergerius_n the_o pope_n legate_n have_v go_v unto_o all_o the_o prince_n germany_n the_o policy_n of_o vergerius_n in_o germany_n several_o show_v they_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v call_v the_o council_n to_o conveen_n at_o mantua_n they_o all_o give_v he_o one_o answer_n that_o they_o will_v advise_v in_o their_o meeting_n at_o smalcald_a and_o there_o they_o tell_v he_o they_o hope_v that_o caesar_n will_v not_o depart_v from_o his_o promise_n and_o decree_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v in_o germany_n nor_o can_v they_o understand_v what_o it_o mean_v that_o the_o pope_n promise_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o safety_n of_o they_o which_o shall_v assemble_v when_o they_o look_v back_o into_o former_a time_n nor_o how_o in_o the_o council_n the_o way_n of_o treat_v can_v be_v right_o order_v where_o he_o who_o have_v so_o oft_o condemn_v they_o will_v have_v the_o power_n in_o his_o hand_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v right_o call_v a_o council_n where_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n command_v all_o but_o where_o man_n of_o all_o condition_n in_o the_o church_n even_o seculares_fw-la also_o have_v a_o like_a power_n vergerius_n have_v also_o be_v with_o luther_n at_o wittenberg_n and_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v great_a account_n of_o he_o and_o be_v sorry_a for_o the_o want_n of_o such_o a_o man_n who_o may_v do_v good_a in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n which_o then_o be_v inseparable_a and_o the_o court_n be_v ready_a to_o vouchsave_v he_o all_o favour_n it_o be_v displeasant_a unto_o they_o that_o former_a pope_n have_v use_v such_o bitterness_n against_o he_o nor_o have_v he_o who_o profess_v not_o divinity_n a_o purpose_n to_o dispute_v controversy_n with_o he_o but_o to_o show_v he_o the_o weight_n of_o humane_a reason_n how_o expedient_a it_o be_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o the_o church_n he_o may_v consider_v that_o doctrine_n of_o his_o be_v not_o hear_v before_o those_o 18_o year_n and_o have_v bring_v forth_o innumerable_a sect_n where_o of_o each_o accurse_v another_o whence_o many_o tumult_n and_o broil_n have_v arisen_a and_o therefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v from_o god_n but_o he_o be_v singular_o blow_v up_o with_o selve-love_n who_o will_v endanger_v all_o the_o world_n rather_o than_o not_o to_o vent_v his_o own_o opinion_n see_v he_o have_v continue_v without_o sting_n of_o conscience_n the_o space_n of_o 35_o year_n in_o that_o faith_n wherein_o he_o be_v baptize_v he_o shall_v still_o maintain_v it_o he_o may_v remember_v how_o aeneas_n silvius_n be_v once_o addict_v unto_o his_o own_o opinion_n and_o hardly_o attain_v unto_o a_o silly_a chanonry_n in_o trent_n but_o when_o he_o change_v his_o opinion_n he_o become_v a_o bishop_n and_o then_o a_o cardinal_n and_o last_o be_v pope_n and_o
a_o model_n of_o presbyterian_a gouvernment_n be_v draw_v up_o and_o elder_n be_v choose_v again_o this_o be_v settle_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o senate_n so_o that_o from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o presbytery_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a either_o for_o minister_n or_o people_n to_o recede_v though_o both_o senate_n and_o the_o people_n do_v agree_v thereunto_o as_o consonant_n unto_o god_n word_n yet_o some_o not_o only_o of_o the_o people_n but_o even_o of_o the_o chief_a man_n do_v manifest_v their_o dislike_v of_o it_o yea_o some_o minister_n which_o afterward_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o some_o wickedness_n though_o they_o do_v not_o open_o oppose_v it_o yet_o under_o hand_n they_o wrought_v against_o it_o pretend_v the_o example_n of_o other_o church_n where_o no_o excommunication_n be_v use_v and_o some_o cry_v out_o that_o it_o will_v introduce_v again_o a_o popish_a tyranny_n but_o he_o overcome_v these_o difficulty_n by_o show_v that_o not_o only_o the_o true_a doctrine_n but_o discipline_n also_o must_v be_v warrant_v by_o the_o worde_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o age_n as_o oecolampade_n zuinglius_fw-la bucer_fw-la melanthon_n capito_n etc._n etc._n which_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o their_o book_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o other_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v which_o have_v not_o proceed_v so_o far_o nor_o those_o minister_n which_o have_v find_v that_o their_o people_n need_v not_o such_o censure_n and_o last_o show_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o popish_a tyranny_n and_o the_o easy_a yoke_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o that_o at_o last_o the_o discipline_n be_v establish_v novemb_n 20._o 1541._o nevertheless_o some_o loose_a man_n will_v not_o be_v tie_v unto_o that_o discipline_n but_o seek_v to_o break_v it_o especial_o in_o the_o year_n 1546_o amedius_fw-la perrin_n and_o ambitious_a man_n can_v not_o endure_v caluin_n thundering_n against_o his_o lasciviousness_n and_o begin_v to_o discover_v what_o he_o and_o his_o associate_n have_v for_o a_o time_n be_v contrive_v the_o senate_n take_v notice_n of_o he_o he_o hold_v he_o silent_a a_o while_n but_o the_o contrive_a wickedness_n break_v out_o more_o open_o for_o one_o of_o the_o senate_n blame_v caluin_n of_o fall_n doctrine_n the_o cause_n be_v hear_v before_o the_o senate_n and_o that_o senator_n be_v condemn_v of_o slander_n and_o two_o minister_n which_o have_v set_v he_o on_o be_v convict_v of_o drunkenness_n and_o remove_v out_o of_o their_o place_n caluin_n show_v still_o that_o the_o life_n of_o christianity_n consist_v not_o so_o much_o in_o profession_n of_o truth_n as_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o godliness_n then_o perrin_n and_o his_o associate_n do_v appeal_v from_o the_o presbytery_n unto_o the_o senate_n the_o presbytery_n plead_v their_o constitution_n agreeable_a unto_o god_n word_n and_o settle_v by_o authority_n and_o therefore_o that_o their_o privilege_n may_v not_o be_v infringe_v the_o senate_n grant_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o because_o perrin_n will_v not_o be_v rule_v they_o depose_v he_o from_o his_o captainship_n an._n 1547._o but_o the_o next_o year_n he_o be_v restore_v by_o the_o prevalency_n of_o his_o friend_n in_o the_o year_n 1552._o one_o berteler_n be_v suspend_v from_o the_o sacrament_n for_o sundry_a fault_n he_o crave_v that_o the_o senate_n will_v absolve_v he_o caluin_n in_o name_n of_o the_o presbytery_n oppones_fw-la show_v that_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v preserve_v and_o not_o destroy_v good_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o false_a calumny_n of_o the_o adversary_n pretend_v that_o the_o presbytery_n do_v encroach_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n prevail_v so_o that_o in_o the_o common-councel_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o last_o appeal_v aught_o to_o be_v unto_o the_o senate_n who_o may_v absolve_v who_o they_o think_v fit_a so_o berteler_n goat_n letter_n of_o absolution_n confirm_v with_o the_o public_a seal_n then_o perrin_n and_o his_o associate_n hope_v for_o one_o of_o two_o either_o that_o caluin_n will_v not_o obey_v this_o mandate_n and_o so_o he_o will_v be_v oppress_v by_o the_o people_n or_o else_o if_o he_o do_v obey_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o contemn_v the_o presbytery_n and_o they_o may_v follow_v their_o licentiousness_n caluin_n understand_v this_o but_o two_o day_n before_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o september_n and_o in_o his_o sermon_n when_o he_o have_v speak_v much_o against_o the_o profaner_n of_o the_o sacrament_n say_v i_o follow_v chrysostome_n will_v rather_o suffer_v myself_o to_o be_v slay_v then_o this_o my_o hand_n shall_v reach_v the_o holy_a element_n to_o those_o who_o have_v be_v judge_v contemner_n of_o god_n these_o word_n do_v so_o prevail_v though_o the_o man_n be_v head_n strong_a that_o perrin_n send_v private_o unto_o berteler_n and_o advise_v he_o not_o to_o obtrude_v himself_o upon_o the_o sacrament_n so_o it_o be_v peaceable_o admini_v through_o god_n mercy_n in_o the_o afternoon_n caluin_n preach_v on_o act_n 20_o where_o paul_n take_v his_o leave_n of_o the_o ephesian_n and_o profess_v that_o he_o will_v neither_o oppose_v nor_o teach_v other_o to_o oppose_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o he_o exhort_v the_o congregation_n to_o continue_v in_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o see_v say_v he_o thing_n be_v come_v to_o this_o pass_n give_v i_o leave_v brethren_n to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n unto_o you_o i_o commend_v you_o to_o god_n and_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n these_o word_n daunt_v the_o wicked_a wonderful_o and_o prevail_v much_o with_o they_o all_o the_o next_o day_n the_o common-counsel_n be_v assemble_v and_o the_o whole_a presbytery_n entreat_v that_o they_o may_v be_v hear_v in_o give_v reason_n for_o abrogate_a the_o forenamed_a act_n concern_v the_o appeal_n this_o be_v assent_v their_o mind_n be_v much_o change_v and_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o act_n shall_v be_v suspend_v and_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o four_o helvetian_a church_n shall_v be_v crave_v therein_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n nothing_o shall_v be_v do_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o law_n former_o establish_v thus_o the_o faction_n be_v divert_v from_o caluin_n but_o afterward_o they_o seek_v to_o bring_v the_o storm_n on_o farell_n who_o in_o these_o day_n come_v from_o neocom_a into_o geneva_n and_o in_o a_o sermon_n sharp_o reprove_v the_o factious_a partly_o know_v the_o equity_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o partly_o rely_v upon_o his_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v former_o among_o they_o when_o he_o be_v go_v that_o faction_n complain_v that_o he_o have_v do_v they_o wrong_n and_o procure_v that_o one_o be_v send_v unto_o the_o senate_n of_o neocom_n to_o cause_n farell_n appear_v at_o a_o day_n appoint_v farell_n come_v again_o to_o geneva_n not_o without_o danger_n for_o that_o faction_n cry_v out_o that_o he_o deserve_v to_o be_v throw_v into_o the_o river_n a_o honest_a young_a man_n say_v to_o perrin_n that_o farell_n the_o common_a father_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v not_o be_v wrong_v and_o he_o with_o another_o citizen_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o stand_v by_o farell_n at_o the_o day_n of_o hear_v his_o adversaty_n be_v astonish_v and_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n crave_v pardon_v so_o farell_n be_v dismiss_v then_o come_v answer_v from_o the_o four_o helvetian_a city_n who_o unanimous_o confirm_v the_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n as_o it_o have_v be_v before_o establish_v behold_v here_o what_o sort_n of_o man_n do_v oppose_v the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n to_o wit_n loose_a and_o ambitious_a man_n xli_o francis_n 2._o king_n of_o france_n do_v maintain_v james_n faber_n and_o his_o france_n persecution_n in_o france_n printer_n against_o the_o sobonist_n and_o he_o profess_v a_o desire_n of_o reformation_n when_o he_o seek_v aleagve_n with_o the_o protestant_n at_o smalcald_a nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o pope_n to_o judge_v so_o of_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o continue_v in_o persecute_v they_o which_o be_v for_o reformation_n who_o can_v tell_v all_o the_o barbarity_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o france_n from_o the_o year_n 1538._o until_o the_o year_n 1589._o yet_o for_o exampls_n sake_n we_o will_v touch_v some_o in_o that_o year_n 1538._o aprile_a 13._o a_o young_a gentleman_n of_o tolouse_n be_v burn_v at_o paris_n for_o eat_v egg_n in_o lent_n remarkable_a be_v that_o horrible_a impiety_n an._n 1545._o against_o the_o waldenses_n in_o merindole_n &_o cabrier_n when_o those_o hear_v of_o the_o reformation_n in_o germany_n they_o be_v glade_n and_o send_v for_o some_o preacher_n by_o who_o they_o receive_v clear_a information_n and_o with_o more_o courage_n do_v avow_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o ancestor_n they_o be_v delate_a for_o rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n and_o this_o
a_o small_a number_n of_o man_n we_o must_v set_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o general_a counsel_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o approve_a father_n and_o special_o we_o shall_v give_v place_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n be_v expound_v by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n lest_o heretic_n brag_n and_o say_v they_o alone_o have_v the_o worde_n of_o god_n as_o for_o the_o other_o point_n if_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n have_v not_o so_o greata_fw-la force_n as_o they_o sound_v and_o seem_v to_o have_v why_o be_v they_o repeat_v by_o all_o the_o three_o evangelist_n and_o by_o saint_n paul_n why_o do_v not_o the_o late_a evangelist_n or_o the_o apostle_n expound_v these_o word_n as_o the_o sacramentary_n do_v this_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o testator_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v reject_v this_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o not_o only_o the_o bread_n be_v give_v but_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n real_o he_o conclude_v with_o those_o word_n i_o will_v yield_v unto_o your_o opinion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n except_o you_o point_v unto_o the_o minister_n think_v that_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o flesh_n be_v not_o in_o this_o world_n from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o ascension_n and_o that_o he_o have_v some_o other_o body_n than_o that_o which_o be_v visible_a and_o except_o you_o think_v he_o be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o sacrament_n then_o in_o the_o word_n if_o you_o think_v it_o all_o one_o to_o put_v on_o christ_n in_o baptism_n and_o to_o eat_v his_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n and_o brief_o that_o he_o be_v so_o in_o heaven_n that_o he_o be_v not_o also_o on_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o he_o be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o sacrament_n than_o he_o be_v in_o a_o mire_n and_o then_o abjure_v all_o those_o dangerous_a opinion_n he_o exhort_v the_o king_n and_o queen_n to_o maintain_v the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o protest_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o prelate_n that_o they_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o defence_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v declare_v all_o the_o clergy_n come_v before_o the_o king_n and_o cardinal_n turnon_n in_o their_o name_n protest_v again_o this_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o they_o will_v seal_v with_o their_o blood_n and_o which_o the_o king_n shall_v embrace_v and_o if_o these_o who_o be_v separate_v will_v not_o subscribe_v the_o same_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v hear_v but_o be_v banish_v and_o they_o crave_v most_o earnest_o that_o the_o king_n will_v so_o do_v the_o minister_n be_v afraid_a that_o the_o king_n will_v not_o admit_v they_o at_o another_o day_n and_o therefore_o be_v the_o more_o earnest_n that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v please_v to_o hear_v a_o reply_n present_o but_o that_o can_v not_o be_v obtain_v by_o supplication_n they_o procure_v continuation_n of_o the_o conference_n but_o in_o a_o more_o private_a place_n where_o be_v the_o king_n and_o queen_n and_o king_n of_o navarre_n the_o prelate_n twelve_o minister_n and_o a_o few_o other_o beza_n declare_v what_o the_o church_n be_v and_o distinguish_v it_o according_a to_o the_o twofold_a call_n then_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o succession_n and_o call_n of_o pastor_n in_o ordinary_a call_n he_o say_v three_o thing_n be_v necessary_a examination_n election_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o in_o extraordinary_a call_n it_o be_v lawful_a by_o god_n authority_n albeit_o one_o or_o two_o or_o all_o these_o condition_n be_v want_v as_o for_o work_v of_o miracle_n it_o be_v not_o always_o conjoin_v with_o extraordinary_a call_n unless_o we_o will_v talk_v of_o thing_n whereof_o we_o have_v no_o testimony_n then_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o whether_o it_o may_v err_v and_o he_o show_v out_o of_o the_o cardinal_n word_n that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o particular_a member_n and_o congregation_n as_o for_o the_o general_a council_n he_o say_v man_n have_v not_o the_o more_o learning_n that_o they_o become_v commissioner_n and_o many_o time_n the_o prelate_n of_o sound_a judgement_n have_v be_v absent_a and_o they_o who_o shall_v have_v be_v most_o sound_a have_v be_v most_o corrupt_a as_o bernard_n complain_v in_o his_o time_n and_o therefore_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v above_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o cause_n augustin_n write_v unto_o maximin_n the_o arrian_n that_o he_o will_v not_o object_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o will_v have_v the_o council_n of_o arimino_n object_v against_o he_o but_o let_v the_o scripture_n be_v judge_n for_o both_o and_o yet_o we_o despise_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o counsel_n and_o father_n if_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n but_o as_o jerom_n write_v the_o error_n of_o the_o antiens_fw-la shall_v not_o be_v follow_v but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v never_o be_v despise_v i_o fear_v say_v he_o that_o i_o have_v be_v too_o prolix_a and_o therefore_o lest_o i_o give_v offence_n i_o will_v continue_v or_o leave_v off_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o shall_v please_v your_o royal_a majesty_n the_o cardinal_n beckon_v unto_o claud._n espensius_fw-la a_o sorbonist_n he_o say_v he_o oft_o have_v wonder_v how_o the_o minister_n have_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n see_v they_o neither_o enter_v ordinary_o by_o ordinary_a authority_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n nor_o by_o any_o extraordinary_a way_n see_v they_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o work_v of_o miracle_n nor_o by_o express_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o their_o ministry_n be_v not_o lawful_a from_o that_o he_o turn_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n at_o the_o command_n of_o the_o cardinal_n lorraine_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o minister_n into_o controversy_n with_o the_o german_n as_o be_v say_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n speak_v a_o white_a monk_n of_o sorbon_n xainctius_n but_o more_o despite_n full_o against_o the_o minister_n and_o to_o the_o offence_n of_o both_o party_n beza_n complain_v of_o his_o impertinency_n and_o do_v supplicate_v the_o queen_n that_o she_o will_v provide_v against_o revile_v word_n and_o digression_n then_o he_o say_v our_o minister_n be_v choose_v and_o approve_v by_o our_o own_o church_n and_o so_o have_v two_o part_n of_o ordinary_a call_n and_o if_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v want_v unto_o any_o the_o calling_n be_v lawful_a because_o these_o two_o be_v the_o substantial_o and_o the_o other_o be_v less_o principal_a and_o in_o so_o great_a confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o will_v not_o seek_v imposition_n of_o hand_n from_o they_o who_o vice_n superstition_n and_o false_a doctrine_n we_o disallow_v for_o they_o be_v open_a enemy_n unto_o the_o truth_n as_o the_o prophet_n have_v not_o such_o enemy_n then_o as_o the_o priest_n neither_o seek_v they_o confirmation_n of_o their_o office_n unto_o which_o god_n have_v call_v they_o neither_o be_v miracle_n necessary_a in_o extraordinary_a call_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o example_n yea_o paul_n in_o evidence_v his_o call_n speak_v not_o of_o miracle_n that_o he_o have_v wrought_v but_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o preach_n the_o which_o we_o also_o may_v say_v of_o so_o many_o nation_n and_o province_n which_o have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n by_o our_o preach_n nor_o can_v there_o be_v a_o great_a confirmation_n of_o any_o ministry_n see_v the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o we_o which_o neither_o imprisonment_n nor_o banishment_n nor_o fire_n can_v hinder_v espenseus_n say_v bring_v i_o one_o example_n in_o those_o 1500._o year_n like_o to_o you_o all_o thing_n say_v beza_n be_v not_o write_v that_o have_v be_v do_v and_o however_o it_o have_v be_v it_o follow_v not_o that_o our_o call_n be_v not_o manifest_a enough_o and_o set_v forth_o from_o god_n in_o his_o due_a time_n he_o be_v not_o now_o bring_v a_o new_a gospel_n but_o restore_v the_o old_a which_o be_v sufficient_o confirm_v before_o and_o now_o by_o a_o singular_a way_n he_o have_v cause_v his_o light_n to_o shine_v he_o speak_v also_o of_o tradition_n but_o be_v oft_o interrupt_v by_o xainctius_n and_o the_o cardinal_n fear_v that_o his_o incivility_n be_v check_v by_o the_o queen_n will_v end_v the_o controversy_n as_o if_o the_o question_n have_v be_v sufficient_o clear_v and_o the_o sorbonist_n speak_v as_o if_o the_o victory_n have_v be_v on_o their_o side_n then_o the_o cardinal_n say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o prelate_n that_o they_o will_v proceed_v no_o further_o unless_o the_o question_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v handle_v and_o then_o he_o ask_v the_o minister_n whether_o they_o do_v embrace_v the_o augustan_n confession_n here_o he_o play_v the_o fox_n for_o if_o they_o deny_v
acknowledge_v nothing_o in_o the_o supper_n but_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o ascribe_v nothing_o unto_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o they_o be_v badge_n of_o christian_a profession_n but_o now_o i_o affi●e_v before_o the_o lord_n unto_o his_o church_n as_o my_o divulged_a book_n can_v testify_v that_o i_o be_v never_o of_o that_o mind_n or_o do_v think_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a supper_n nothing_o ●●_o give_v or_o distribute_v but_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o empty_a sign_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o not_o also_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n likewise_o albeit_o in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o do_v speak_v of_o that_o as_o a_o main_a thing_n that_o they_o be_v the_o badge_n of_o our_o profession_n yet_o i_o never_o deny_v that_o the_o lord_n give_v those_o also_o for_o recommend_v his_o mercy_n and_o exhibit_v the_o gift_n of_o life_n yea_o and_o the_o same_o gift_n not_o in_o one_o place_n only_o the_o only_a thing_n that_o i_o do_v impugn_v be_v that_o the_o sacrament_n do_v of_o themselves_o confirm_v faith_n see_v that_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o when_o the_o dispute_n continue_v and_o luther_n have_v declare_v all_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n more_o full_o i_o see_v that_o he_o neither_o do_v unite_v the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n by_o any_o natural_a tie_n unto_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n nor_o do_v enclose_v they_o local_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n nor_o do_v ascribe_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n the_o proper_a virtue_n whereby_o they_o of_o themselves_o can_v bring_v salvation_n unto_o the_o receiver_n but_o he_o do_v assert_v only_o a_o sacramental_a union_n between_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o the_o bread_n and_o between_o his_o blood_n and_o the_o wine_n and_o that_o he_o do_v teach_v that_o the_o confirmation_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v asscribe_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n be_v by_o virtue_n not_o which_o cleave_v unto_o the_o external_a thing_n by_o themselves_o but_o which_o belong_v unto_o christ_n and_o be_v dispense_v by_o his_o spirit_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n so_o soon_o as_o i_o do_v observe_v this_o it_o be_v my_o serious_a purpose_n to_o show_v and_o recommend_v it_o unto_o other_o and_o so_o i_o desire_v to_o testify_v in_o this_o place_n unto_o all_o man_n who_o shall_v read_v this_o that_o luther_n and_o other_o who_o be_v true_o with_o he_o and_o follow_v his_o teach_n right_o do_v not_o hold_v any_o impanation_n in_o the_o holy_a supper_n nor_o any_o local_a enclose_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o bread_n or_o of_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o wine_n neither_o attribute_v any_o save_a power_n unto_o the_o external_a action_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o themselves_o but_o they_o hold_v a_o substantial_a presence_n and_o exhibition_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o the_o reby_o they_o declare_v plain_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o presence_n and_o exhibition_n be_v certain_a by_o the_o lord_n word_n and_o institution_n without_o any_o natural_a union_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n with_o the_o element_n for_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o come_v down_o again_o from_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n into_o the_o condition_n of_o this_o corruptible_a life_n they_o do_v also_o acknowledge_v and_o preach_v the_o save_a presence_n and_o exhibition_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o no●_n of_o the_o external_a action_n and_o that_o the_o communicant_n enjoy_v it_o when_o with_o true_a faith_n they_o partake_v of_o the_o sacrament_n certain_o our_o saviour_n do_v intend_v as_o in_o all_o his_o action_n so_o especial_o in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o advanoe_v our_o salvation_n which_o if_o we_o enjoy_v not_o it_o must_v be_v through_o our_o own_o fau●●_n for_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o thanksgiving_a be_v the_o communication_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o unboubted_o unto_o the_o end_n that_o both_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n may_n grow_v we_o and_o all_o salvation_n may_v be_v perfect_v therefore_o who_o know_v this_o mystery_n can_v doubt_v that_o all_o who_o be_v religious_o partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n by_o the_o same_o partake_n have_v their_o ●aith_n into_o christ_n more_o confirm_v that_o be_v more_o full_a salvation_n not_o indeed_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o external_a action_n of_o itself_o but_o through_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n and_o power_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o he_o show_v towards_o we_o in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n for_o the_o more_o grave_o and_o with_o the_o more_o religious_a ceremony_n the_o redemption_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o communion_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a table_n pious_a heart_n that_o believe_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o more_o commove_v and_o do_v the_o more_o earnest_o embrace_v the_o tender_v communion_n of_o christ_n and_o afterward_o be_v the_o more_o zealous_a in_o confidence_n and_o duty_n unto_o christ_n and_o therefore_o what_o either_o i_o in_o my_o former_a en●●rations_n or_o other_o have_v write_v against_o the_o natural_a union_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o christ_n body_n or_o that_o local_a enclose_v think_v not_o godly_a reader_n that_o those_o be_v against_o luther_n and_o they_o that_o stand_v right_o with_o he_o for_o those_o neither_o hold_n nor_o teach_v any_o such_o thing_n neither_o do_v the_o word_n which_o they_o do_v use_v carry_v such_o a_o opinion_n by_o themselves_o as_o even_o i_o think_v some_o time_n for_o which_o only_a cause_n i_o do_v carp_v at_o their_o word_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o that_o their_o mind_n be_v any_o way_n more_o sound_a huldric_n zuinglius_fw-la who_o all_o that_o know_v he_o know_v to_o have_v be_v zealous_a and_o of_o admirable_a dexterity_n in_o windicate_v the_o church_n unto_o christ_n from_o the_o tyranny_n and_o superstition_n of_o the_o pope_n when_o m._n luther_n and_o other_o contend_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o that_o the_o lord_n body_n be_v in_o the_o bread_n do_v persuade_v himself_o that_o they_o think_v the_o lord_n body_n either_o to_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o bread_n or_o to_o be_v enclose_v local_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v always_o allege_v against_o the_o first_o if_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o lord_n body_n the_o bread_n be_v crucify_v for_o we_o and_o against_o the_o other_o those_o passage_n which_o testify_v that_o the_o lord_n leave_v the_o earth_n and_o go_v into_o the_o heaven_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n out_o of_o those_o he_o begin_v to_o expound_v be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o signify_v and_o by_o the_o heat_n of_o contention_n he_o be_v so_o carry_v that_o when_o he_o will_v impugn_v only_o the_o impanation_n and_o local_a enclose_v or_o presence_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o world_n and_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v more_o absent_a than_o present_a in_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o that_o the_o sign_n be_v rather_o give_v here_o then_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o his_o judgement_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v simple_o or_o whole_o absent_a from_o the_o supper_n or_o that_o the_o symbol_n be_v give_v without_o or_o altogether_o empty_a of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o he_o himself_v profess_v afterward_o when_o he_o be_v here_o treat_v about_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o particular_a and_o so_o do_v he_o write_v in_o the_o apology_n unto_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n for_o he_o there_o do_v maintain_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o word_n of_o augustine_n so_o sometime_o when_o he_o will_v beware_v that_o man_n seek_v salvation_n by_o the_o external_a work_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o aver_v plain_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v but_o badge_n of_o christian_a society_n and_o confer_v nothing_o unto_o salvation_n but_o in_o other_o place_n he_o write_v plain_o that_o the_o sacrament_n do_v help_v faith_n whence_o it_o it_o clea●e_v that_o when_o he_o write_v sacrament_n do_v confer_v nothing_o unto_o salvation_n nor_o confirm_v faith_n thereby_o he_o understand_v that_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v the_o outward_a action_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v of_o themselves_o no_o power_n to_o strenghthen_v the_o conscience_n with_o increase_n of_o faith_n for_o when_o he_o intend_v to_o prove_v that_o his_o say_n the_o sacrament_n give_v not_o salvation_n nor_o confirm_v faith_n he_o allege_v that_o to_o confirm_v or_o increase_v faith_n be_v the_o work_n
his_o subject_n to_o murder_n and_o torment_v the_o israelite_n and_o most_o cruel_o to_o persecute_v their_o life_n but_o be_v their_o obedience_n blind_a rage_n it_o ●hould_v be_v call_v excusable_a before_o god_n the_o universal_a plague_n do_v plain_o declare_v that_o the_o wicked_a commander_n and_o they_o which_o obey_v be_v a_o like_a guilty_a before_o god_n and_o if_o the_o exemple_n of_o pharaoh_n shall_v be_v reject_v because_o he_o be_v a_o ethnic_a then_o consider_v the_o fact_n of_o saul_n he_o be_v a_o king_n anoint_v of_o god_n appoint_v to_o reign_v over_o his_o people_n he_o command_v to_o persecute_v david_n because_o as_o he_o allege_v david_n be_v a_o traitor_n and_o usuper_fw-la of_o the_o crown_n and_o also_o command_v abimelech_n the_o hiepriest_n and_o his_o fellow_n to_o be_v slay_v but_o do_v god_n approve_v any_o part_n of_o this_o obedience_n evident_a it_o be_v he_o do_v not_o and_o think_v you_o that_o god_n will_v approve_v in_o you_o that_o which_o he_o do_v condemn_v in_o other_o be_v not_o deceive_v with_o god_n be_v not_o such_o partiality_n if_o you_o obey_v the_o unjust_a command_n of_o wicked_a ruler_n you_o shall_v suffer_v god_n vengeance_n and_o just_a punishment_n with_o they_o and_o therefore_o as_o you_o tender_v your_o own_o salvation_n we_o most_o earnest_o require_v of_o you_o moderation_n and_o that_o you_o stay_v yourselves_o and_o the_o fury_n of_o other_o from_o persecute_v we_o till_o our_o cause_n be_v try_v in_o open_a and_o lawful_a judgement_n and_o now_o to_o you_o which_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o justice_n of_o our_o cause_n who_o sometime_o have_v profess_v christ_n jesus_n with_o we_o and_o also_o have_v exhort_v we_o unto_o this_o enterprise_n and_o yet_o have_v leave_v we_o in_o our_o extreme_a necessity_n at_o least_o look_v through_o your_o finger_n in_o this_o our_o trouble_n as_o if_o the_o matter_n appertain_v not_o unto_o you_o we_o say_v that_o unless_o all_o fear_n and_o worldly_a respect_n set_v aside_o you_o join_v yourselves_o with_o we_o that_o as_o of_o god_n you_o be_v repute_v traitor_n so_o you_o shall_v you_o be_v excommunicate_v from_o our_o society_n and_o from_o all_o participation_n with_o we_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n the_o glory_n of_o this_o victory_n which_o god_n shall_v give_v to_o his_o church_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v appertain_v unto_o you_o but_o the_o fearful_a judgement_n that_o apprehend_v ananias_n and_o his_o wife_n saphira_n shall_v apprehend_v you_o and_o your_o posterity_n you_o may_v perchance_o contemn_v and_o despise_v the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o church_n now_o by_o god_n mighty_a power_n erect_v among_o we_o as_o a_o thing_n of_o no_o force_n yet_o we_o doubt_v nothing_o but_o that_o our_o church_n and_o the_o true_a minister_n of_o the_o same_o have_v the_o same_o power_n which_o our_o master_n christ_n jesus_n grant_v unto_o his_o apostle_n in_o these_o word_n who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v shall_v be_v forgive_v and_o who_o you_o retain_v shall_v be_v retain_v and_o that_o because_o they_o preach_v and_o we_o believe_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o his_o most_o bless_a worde_n and_o therefore_o excep_v you_o will_v contem_fw-la christ_n jesus_n you_o neither_o can_v despise_v our_o threaten_n nor_o refuse_v we_o call_v for_o our_o just_a defence_n by_o your_o faint_a and_o by_o retract_v your_o support_n the_o enemy_n be_v encourage_v and_o think_v that_o they_o shall_v find_v no_o resistance_n in_o which_o point_n god_n willing_a they_o shall_v be_v deceive_v for_o if_o they_o be_v ten_o thousand_o and_o we_o but_o one_o thousand_o they_o shall_v not_o murder_v the_o least_o of_o our_o brethren_n but_o we_o god_n assist_v we_o shall_v first_o commit_v our_o life_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o their_o defence_n but_o that_o shall_v aggravate_v your_o condemnation_n for_o you_o declare_v yourselves_o tratior_n to_o the_o truth_n once_o profess_v and_o murderer_n of_o we_o and_o of_o our_o brethren_n from_o who_o you_o withdraw_v your_o dutiful_a and_o promise_a support_n who_o your_o only_a presence_n in_o man_n judgement_n may_v preserve_v from_o this_o danger_n for_o our_o enemy_n look_v not_o to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o to_o the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o man_n when_o the_o number_n be_v mean_a to_o resist_v they_o than_o rage_n they_o as_o bloody_a wolf_n but_o a_o party_n equal_a or_o able_a to_o resist_v they_o by_o appearance_n do_v bridle_v their_o fury_n examine_v your_o own_o conscience_n and_o weigh_v that_o sentence_n of_o our_o master_n christ_n jesus_n say_v whosoever_o deni_v i_o or_o be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o before_o man_n i_o shall_v deny_v he_o before_o my_o father_n now_o be_v the_o day_n of_o his_o battle_n in_o this_o realm_n if_o you_o deny_v we_o your_o brethren_n suffer_v for_o his_o name_n sake_n you_o do_v also_o deny_v he_o as_o he_o witness_v in_o these_o word_n whatsoever_o you_o do_v to_o any_o of_o these_o little_a one_o you_o do_v that_o to_o i_o and_o what_o you_o do_v not_o to_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o that_o you_o do_v not_o to_o i_o if_o these_o sentence_n be_v true_a as_o concern_v meat_n drink_z clothes_n and_o such_o thing_n appertain_v unto_o the_o body_n shall_v they_o not_o also_o be_v true_a in_o the_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o life_n be_v of_o thousand_o who_o blood_n be_v now_o seek_v for_o profession_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o thus_o short_o we_o leave_v you_o who_o sometimes_o have_v profess_v christ_n jesus_n with_o we_o to_o the_o examination_n of_o your_o own_o conscience_n and_o yet_o once_o again_o of_o you_o who_o be_v blind_v by_o superstition_n do_v persecute_v we_o we_o require_v modetation_n till_o our_o cause_n may_v be_v try_v which_o if_o you_o will_v not_o grant_v unto_o we_o for_o god_n cause_n yet_o we_o desire_v you_o to_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o preservation_n of_o our_o common_a country_n which_o we_o can_v not_o soon_o betray_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o stranger_n than_o that_o one_o of_o we_o destroy_v and_o murder_v another_o consider_v our_o petition_n and_o call_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o righteous_a judgement_n when_o these_o letter_n be_v divulge_v some_o begin_v to_o ask_v whether_o they_o may_v in_o conscience_n fight_v against_o such_o as_o offer_v due_a obedience_n unto_o authority_n and_o require_v nothing_o but_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o that_o their_o religion_n and_o fact_n be_v try_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o letter_n be_v carry_v quick_o unto_o kyle_n and_o cuningham_n where_o the_o professor_n do_v conveen_v at_o craiggy_a and_o after_o some_o dubious_a reason_n alexander_n earl_n of_o glencairn_n say_v let_v every_o man_n serve_v his_o conscience_n i_o will_v by_o god_n grace_n see_v my_o brethren_n at_o perth_n yea_o albeit_o never_o a_o man_n will_v accompany_v i_o i_o will_v go_v albeit_o i_o have_v but_o a_o pik_a upon_o my_o shoulder_n for_o i_o have_v rather_o die_v with_o that_o company_n then_o live_v after_o they_o then_o other_o be_v so_o encourage_v that_o all_o go_v with_o he_o and_o when_o the_o lion-herault_n in_o his_o coat_n of_o arm_n command_v all_o man_n under_o pain_n of_o treason_n to_o return_v to_o their_o own_o house_n by_o public_a sound_n of_o trumpet_n at_o glascow_n not_o one_o man_n obey_v the_o charge_n because_o it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o prelate_n and_o their_o party_n d●d_v suppress_v their_o petition_n so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v and_o do_v kindle_v the_o rage_n of_o all_o man_n against_o they_o it_o be_v think_v expedient_a to_o write_v a_o declaration_n unto_o they_o in_o this_o form_n to_o the_o generation_n of_o antichrist_n the_o pestilent_a prelate_n and_o their_o shaveling_n within_o scotland_n the_o congregation_n of_o christ_n jesus_n say_v to_o the_o end_n that_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v abuse_v think_v to_o escape_v just_a punishment_n after_o bishop_n to_o the_o bishop_n that_o you_o in_o your_o blind_a fury_n have_v cause_v the_o blood_n of_o many_o to_o be_v shed_v this_o we_o notify_v and_o declare_v unto_o you_o that_o if_o you_o proceed_v in_o your_o malicious_a cruelty_n you_o shall_v be_v deal_v with_o all_o wheresoever_o you_o shall_v be_v apprehend_v as_o murderer_n and_o open_a enemy_n to_o god_n and_o unto_o mankind_n and_o therefore_o betimes_o cease_v from_o your_o blind_a rage_n remove_v first_o from_o yourselves_o your_o band_n of_o bloody_a man_n of_o war_n and_o reform_v yourselves_o to_o a_o more_o quiet_a life_n and_o then_o mitigate_v you_o the_o authority_n which_o without_o crime_n commit_v on_o our_o part_n you_o have_v enflam_v against_o we_o or_o else_o be_v you_o assure_v that_o with_o the_o same_o measure_n that_o you_o have_v measure_v against_o we_o and_o yet_o intend_v
answer_v see_v those_o have_v accuse_v we_o of_o horrible_a error_n we_o can_v not_o conceive_v how_o we_o can_v acknowledge_v they_o as_o brethren_n as_o for_o invective_n we_o approve_v they_o not_o but_o we_o will_v oppugn_v their_o error_n beza_n say_v see_v you_o refuse_v we_o to_o give_v we_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o fraternity_n neither_o acknowledge_v we_o as_o brethren_n we_o do_v not_o regard_v your_o hand_n of_o friendship_n so_o the_o conference_n be_v end_v march_n 29._o lu._n osian_a cent._n 16._o lib._n 4._o ix_o in_o february_n an._n 1589._o pistorius_n a_o papist_n in_o baden_n vaunt_a that_o he_o baden_n the_o conference_n at_o baden_n will_v confound_v all_o the_o lutheran_n divine_v and_o convince_v they_o by_o the_o scripture_n only_o and_o by_o the_o same_o ground_n maintain_v the_o roman_a religion_n no_o other_o papist_n have_v attempt_v so_o much_o before_o but_o when_o james_n marquis_n of_o baden_n have_v obtain_v from_o lewes_n duke_n of_o wurtembergh_n some_o of_o the_o divine_n there_o shall_v come_v unto_o a_o conference_n pistorius_n shift_v from_o day_n to_o day_n until_o november_n then_o the_o marquis_n and_o frederik_n duke_n of_o mompelgart_n with_o consent_n of_o both_o party_n set_v down_o the_o order_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o dispute_n and_o especial_o to_o handle_v in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o question_n whether_o the_o lutheran_n or_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o catholic_a church_n both_o party_n give_v their_o thesis_n concern_v that_o but_o in_o all_o the_o four_o session_n pistorius_n bring_v not_o one_o argument_n from_o the_o scripture_n he_o insist_v only_o in_o discuss_v the_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n and_o seek_v to_o find_v captious_a sophism_n at_o last_o against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o noble_a man_n and_o of_o his_o adversary_n party_n he_o break_v off_o the_o conference_n neither_o be_v any_o thing_n remarkable_a in_o that_o dispute_n say_v osiander_n lib._n cit._n but_o their_o thesis_n may_v be_v desire_v pistorius_n say_v the_o church_n ever_o be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v conspicuous_a so_o that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v extinguish_v nor_o obscure_v nor_o lurk_v nor_o be_v silent_a though_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n be_v four_o to_o wit_n unity_n holiness_n perpetuity_n and_o universality_n yet_o all_o may_v be_v reduce_v into_o one_o for_o univer_n sality_n be_v the_o absolute_a note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o error_n can_v not_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o false_a church_n so_o purity_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n whether_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n can_v not_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n because_o purity_n depend_v on_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o it_o upon_o purity_n and_o purity_n be_v know_v better_o by_o the_o scripture_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o above_o name_v jacob_n andreae_n say_v the_o church_n on_o earth_n be_v one_o in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n and_o the_o scripture_n show_v clear_o that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o one_o and_o alike_o face_n in_o all_o age_n and_o place_n for_o it_o have_v one_o face_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o she_o be_v most_o pure_a because_o by_o faith_n she_o keep_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n albeit_o her_o chastity_n be_v even_o then_o tempt_v by_o false_a teacher_n and_o she_o have_v another_o face_n when_o she_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o father_n the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o by_o lapse_n of_o time_n some_o error_n creept-in_a as_o the_o apostle_n have_v foretell_v the_o three_o and_o most_o miserable_a face_n be_v under_o antichrist_n of_o which_o estate_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v forewarn_v diligent_o then_o be_v the_o church_n so_o deform_v that_o she_o can_v scarce_o be_v know_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v of_o the_o jewish_a church_n how_o be_v the_o faithful_a city_n become_v a_o harlot_n ..._o nevertheless_o even_o then_o the_o lord_n have_v his_o 7000._o who_o have_v not_o defile_v themselves_o with_o idolatry_n and_o because_o before_o the_o glorious_a come_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v foretell_v that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v reveel_v and_o kill_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o many_o man_n he_o foretell_v another_o and_o a_o four_o face_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v answerable_a unto_o the_o first_o in_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o albeit_o satan_n will_v by_o fanatical_a spirit_n defile_v she_o no_o less_o they_o he_o do_v at_o the_o first_o and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_n shall_v be_v small_a as_o christ_n say_v when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n on_o the_o earth_n nevertheless_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v continue_v in_o despite_n of_o all_o the_o craft_n of_o satan_n until_o the_o last_o judgement-day_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v catholic_a now_o whether_o a_o particular_a or_o universal_a if_o it_o be_v demonstre_v oy_fw-mi the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n or_o by_o their_o writing_n that_o she_o be_v conform_v in_o doctrine_n unto_o she_o which_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n neither_o be_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n better_o know_v by_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n be_v know_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n for_o the_o church_n depend_v on_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n but_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n depend_v on_o god_n only_o and_o his_o reveeled_a will_n even_o albeit_o all_o the_o world_n forsakeit_fw-ge &_o &_o speak_v against_o it_o as_o it_o be_v write_v all_o man_n be_v liar_n but_o god_n be_v true_a etc._n etc._n x._o at_o kracow_n a_o 1591._o on_o the_o ascension-day_n the_o popish_a party_n especialthe_n poland_n trouble_n in_o poland_n student_n be_v stir_v up_o by_o their_o master_n the_o jesuit_n begin_v with_o a_o huge_a tumult_n to_o pull_v down_o the_o house_n wherein_o the_o reform_a be_v wont_a to_o assemble_v the_o king_n sigismond_n and_o the_o nobility_n be_v in_o the_o town_n send_v some_o of_o the_o guard_n to_o hinder_v they_o and_o stay_v they_o for_o a_o time_n nevertheless_o at_o midnight_n those_o do_v gather_v again_o and_o burn_v the_o house_n whole_o the_o nobility_n of_o the_o near_a province_n call_v this_o a_o beginning_n of_o the_o massacre_n of_o paris_n and_o fear_v great_a danger_n do_v meet_v in_o chimiolinscia_n they_o resolve_v first_o to_o send_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o excuse_v themselves_o that_o they_o have_v assemble_v without_o his_o knowledge_n and_o to_o show_v that_o their_o main_a business_n be_v to_o provide_v for_o his_o safety_n and_o honour_n agnaist_fw-ge they_fw-mi like_v tumult_n and_o that_o they_o intend_v to_o have_v a_o more_o frequent_a meeting_n september_n 23._o in_o radom_n where_o the_o nobility_n of_o lithvania_n profess_v the_o gospel_n will_v be_v present_a and_o to_o supplicat_fw-la that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v restore_v unto_o the_o reform_a in_o cracow_n and_o that_o a_o parliament_n may_v be_v call_v to_o establish_v peace_n of_o religion_n the_o king_n show_v his_o displeasure_n for_o that_o they_o have_v assemble_v without_o his_o knowledge_n see_v he_o have_v all_o ready_a promise_v unto_o the_o messenger_n of_o sendomiria_n and_o cracow_n that_o he_o will_v use_v all_o the_o mean_n of_o peace_n and_o to_o punish_v the_o author_n and_o chief_a actor_n of_o that_o tumult_n and_o he_o discharge_v that_o other_o meeting_n he_o give_v they_o liberty_n to_o rebuild_v the_o church_n in_o the_o year_n 1595._o be_v a_o more_o frequent_a covenntion_n of_o the_o reform_a or_o euangelici_fw-la as_o they_o there_o the_o agree_v mean_v of_o the_o resorm_v there_o call_v themselves_o at_o torun_v in_o august_n there_o be_v two_o palatini_n the_o deputy_n of_o five_o other_o two_o castellani_n and_o many_o noble_n of_o poland_n and_o lithuania_n and_o forty_o four_o divine_n after_o prayer_n they_o choose_v swietoslaus_n otzelsci_n to_o be_v precedent_n a_o marshal_n and_o scribe_n otzelsci_n declare_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o assembly_n 1._o to_o advise_v how_o to_o preserve_v a_o consent_n in_o doctrine_n as_o it_o have_v be_v agree_v by_o their_o father_n in_o sendemiria_n and_o 2._o because_o they_o be_v obnoxious_a unto_o the_o malice_n and_o violence_n of_o adversary_n to_o consult_v how_o to_o preserve_v peace_n of_o religion_n as_o both_o present_a king_n and_o the_o former_a king_n havesworn_a to_o continue_v it_o when_o this_o be_v propound_v the_o deputy_n of_o the_o absent_a palatini_n as_o also_o of_o the_o senator_n of_o volhinia_n russia_n podolia_n and_o podlassia_n declare_v the_o excuse_n of_o their_o author_n and_o their_o desire_n of_o the_o same_o particulares_fw-la a_o messinger_n in_o the_o king_n name_n forbid_v they_o to_o sit_v any_o more_o they_o answer_v they_o intend_v nothing_o against_o the_o king_n nor_o kingdom_n nor_o the_o law_n or_o constitution_n
the_o church_n do_v so_o it_o appear_v he_o say_v in_o epiphanius_n it_o do_v not_o and_o the_o contrary_n appear_v by_o s._n jerom_n in_o epi._n ad_fw-la tit._n &_o ad_fw-la euagr._fw-la and_o sundry_a other_o who_o live_v some_o in_o the_o same_o time_n some_o after_o epiph._n even_o austin_n himself_o though_o d._n bancroft_n cite_v he_o as_o bearing_z witness_n thereof_o likewise_o i_o grant_v s._n austin_n in_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n ascribe_v this_o to_o aërius_n for_o one_o that_o he_o say_v presbyterum_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopo_fw-la nulla_fw-la differentiâ_fw-la debere_fw-la discerni_fw-la but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v there_o aught_o to_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o which_o aerius_n say_v condemn_v the_o church_n order_n yea_o make_v a_o schism_n therein_o and_o be_v so_o censure_v by_o s._n austin_n count_v it_o a_o heresy_n as_o in_o epiphanius_n he_o take_v it_o record_v himself_o as_o he_o witness_v de_fw-fr heres_fw-la ad_fw-la quod_fw-la will_fw-mi in_o praefat_fw-la not_o know_v how_o far_o the_o name_n of_o heresy_n shall_v be_v stretch_v and_o another_o thing_n to_o say_v that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o but_o by_o the_o order_n &_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o augustin_n himself_o say_v in_o effect_n epist_n 19_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o witness_v this_o to_o be_v heresy_n by_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o untruth_n how_o wrongful_o it_o be_v father_v on_o he_o and_o on_o epiphanius_n who_o yet_o be_v all_o the_o winess_n that_o d._n bancroft_n have_v produce_v for_o the_o proof_n hereof_o or_o can_v for_o aught_o that_o i_o know_v it_n may_v appear_v by_o this_o that_o our_o learned_a country_n man_n of_o godly_a memory_n bishop_n jewel_o def_n of_o the_o apol._n par._n 2._o c._n 9_o div_o 1._o pag._n 198._o when_o harding_n to_o convince_v the_o same_o opinion_n of_o heresy_n allege_v the_o same_o witness_n he_o cite_v to_o the_o contrary_a chrysostom_n jerom_n austin_n &_o ambrose_n knit_v up_o his_o answer_n with_o these_o word_n all_o these_o and_o other_o mo_z holy_a father_n to_o gether_o with_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n for_o thus_o say_v by_o harding_n advice_n mus●_n be_v hold_v for_o heretic_n and_o michael_n medina_n a_o man_n of_o great_a account_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n more_o ingenuous_a herein_o than_o many_o other_o papist_n affirm_v not_o only_o the_o former_a ancient_a writer_n allege_v by_o bishop_n jewel_n but_o also_o another_o jerom_n thodoret_n primasius_n sedulius_n and_o theophylact_fw-mi be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n touch_v this_o matter_n with_o aërius_n with_o who_o agree_v likewise_o oecumenenius_n on_o tim._n 3._o and_o anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterburry_n in_o epi_fw-la ad_fw-la tit_n and_o another_o anselm_n collect._n can_v lib._n 7._o ca._n 87._o &_o 127._o and_o gregory_n polic._n lib._n 2._o tit_n 19_o &_o 39_o and_o gratian_n ca._n legimus_fw-la do_v 39_o &_o ca._n olympia_n do_v 95._o and_o after_o they_o how_o many_o it_o be_v once_o enroll_v in_o the_o canon-law_n for_o sound_n &_o catholic_a doctrine_n and_o thereupon_o public_o teach_v by_o learned_a man_n all_o which_o do_v bear_v witness_n against_o d._n bancroft_n of_o the_o point_n in_o question_n that_o it_o be_v not_o condemn_v for_o a_o heresy_n by_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o if_o he_o shall_v reply_v that_o these_o late_a witness_n do_v live_v a_o 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o therefore_o touch_v not_o he_o who_o say_v it_o be_v condemn_v so_o in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n austen_n and_o of_o epiphanius_n the_o most_o flourish_a time_n of_o the_o church_n that_o ever_o happen_v since_o the_o apostle_n day_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o learning_n or_o of_o zeal_n first_o they_o who_o i_o name_v though_o live_v in_o a_o late_a time_n yet_o be_v witness_n of_o former_a 1_o oecumenius_n the_o greek_a scholiast_n tread_v in_o the_o step_n of_o the_o old_a greek_a father_n and_o the_o anselme_n with_o gregory_n &_o gratian_n express_v jeroms_n sentence_n word_n by_o word_n beside_o that_o perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o very_o likely_a that_o anselm_n of_o canterburry_n shall_v have_v be_v canonize_v by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o worship_v for_o a_o saint_n that_o the_o other_o anselm_n and_o gregory_n shall_v have_v such_o place_n in_o the_o p_o s_o library_n and_o be_v esteem_v of_o as_o they_o be_v that_o gratian_n work_n shall_v be_v allow_v so_o long_a time_n by_o so_o many_o pope_n for_o the_o golden_a foundation_n of_o the_o canon-law_a if_o they_o have_v teach_v that_o for_o catholik_n &_o sound_n which_o by_o the_o general_a consent_n o●_n the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o most_o flourish_a time_n that_o ever_o happen_v since_o the_o a_o postle_n day_n be_v condemn_v for_o heresy_n chief_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o weight_n and_o moment_n to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o as_o they_o do_v claim_v over_o all_o bishop_n by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n so_o must_v they_o allow_v bishop_n over_o priest_n by_o the_o same_o ordinance_n as_o they_o see_v at_o length_n and_o therefore_o have_v not_o only_o decree_v it_o now_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o also_o in_o the_o new_a edition_n of_o their_o canon-law_n have_v set_v down_o this_o note_n that_o on_o hugh_n gloss_n allow_v by_o the_o archdeacon_n say_v that_o bishop_n have_v differ_v from_o priest_n always_o as_o they_o do_v now_o in_o government_n and_o prelatship_n and_o sacrament_n but_o not_o in_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v common_a to_o they_o both_o must_v be_v hold_v hereafter_o for_o s._n jeroms_n meaning_n at_o least_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o canon_n take_v out_o of_o s._n jerom_n though_o his_o word_n be_v flat_a &_o plain_a against_o this_o gloss_n as_o bellarmin_n himself_o confess_v li._n cit_v ca._n whereunto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o they_o also_o who_o have_v labour_v about_o the_o reform_n of_o the_o church_n these_o 500_o year_n have_v teach_v that_o all_o pastor_n be_v they_o entitle_v bishop_n or_o priest_n have_v equal_a authority_n &_o power_n by_o god_n word_n first_o the_o waldenses_n in_fw-la aen._n sylu._n hist_o bohem._n c._n 35._o &_o pigh_a hierarch_n ecclesiast_fw-la l._n 2._o cap._n 10._o next_o marsilius_n patavinus_n in_o defen_n pacis_fw-la part_n 2._o c._n 15._o then_o wicliff_n in_fw-la tho._n wald._n doctr._fw-la fidei_fw-la tom_n 1._o lib._n 2._o cap._n 60._o &_o tom_n 2._o c._n 7._o and_o his_o scholar_n afterward_o husse_n and_o the_o hussites_n aen._n sylu._n lo._n cit_fw-la last_o of_o all_o luther_n adversus_fw-la falso_fw-la nominatos_fw-la ord_n sco._n episc_n &_o adversus_fw-la papat_fw-la roma_fw-la calvin_n i●_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la philipp_n 1._o &_o tit._n 1._o brentius_n apolog._n confess_v wittenberg_n cap._n 21._o bullinger_n deca_n 5._o serm_n 3._o musculus_fw-la loc._n commun_n do_fw-mi de_fw-fr ministerio_fw-la verb●_n and_o other_o who_o may_v be_v reckon_v particular_o in_o great_a number_n since_o as_o here_o with_o we_o both_o bishop_n jewel_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la pilkinton_n in_o the_o treatise_n of_o burn_a paul_n church_n and_o the_o queen_n professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o our_o university_n d._n humphrey_n in_o campia_n &_o durae_fw-la jesuitas_fw-la part_n 2._o rat_n 3._o &_o whitak_n ad_fw-la rat_n campi_n 6_o &_o confut._n duraei_n lib._n 6._o and_o other_o learned_a man_n do_v consent_v herein_o m._n bradford_n lambert_n and_o other_o in_o fox_n act_n etc._n etc._n d._n fulk_n against_o bristow_n not●_n 40._o and_o answer_v to_o the_o rhem._n tit._n 1._o 5._o so_o in_o foreign_a nation_n all_o that_o i_o have_v read_v treat_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o many_o mo_z not_o doubt_n who_o i_o have_v not_o read_v the_o sift_v &_o examine_v of_o the_o trent_n council_n have_v be_v undertake_v by_o only_o two_o which_o i_o have_v see_v the_o one_o a_o divine_a the_o other_o a_o lawyer_n kemnitius_n and_o gentilletus_n they_o both_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n thereunto_o as_o a_o trent_n error_n the_o one_o by_o scripture_n and_o father_n the_o other_o by_o the_o canon-law_n but_o what_o do_v i_o further_o speak_v of_o several_a person_n it_o be_v the_o common_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o helvetis_n savoy_n france_n scotland_n germany_n hungary_n polond_n the_o low-countrye_n and_o our_o own_o witness_n the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n sect._n 11._o wherefore_o sith_o d._n bancroft_n i_o assute_n myself_o will_v not_o say_v that_o all_o those_o have_v approve_v that_o as_o sound_v and_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o by_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o a_o most_o flourish_a time_n be_v condemn_v for_o heresy_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v oversee_v in_o that_o he_o avouch_v the_o superiority_n which_o
alive_a or_o other_o way_n put_v to_o death_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n john_n oecolampade_n in_o the_o year_n precede_v be_v retire_v into_o a_o monastery_n for_o fear_n of_o trouble_n but_o when_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o public_a edict_n he_o set_v forth_o some_o sermon_n and_o a_o book_n of_o confession_n for_o which_o glapio_n the_o emperor_n chapelan_n do_v threaten_v he_o mischief_n but_o he_o with_o consent_n of_o the_o friar_n go_v away_o in_o safety_n martin_n bucer_n have_v be_v a_o dominican_n 15_o year_n at_o that_o time_n he_o leave_v that_o order_n and_o be_v chaplain_n unto_o fredederik_n prince_n palatin_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o imperial_a council_n the_o next_o year_n he_o be_v call_v to_o be_v preacher_n at_o landstall_n when_o luther_n be_v lurk_v the_o augustinian_n of_o wittenberg_n put_v away_o the_o private_a mass_n because_o it_o be_v a_o execrable_a abuse_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o turn_v into_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n the_o electour_n require_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o university_n then_o justus_n ionas_n jo._n dolcius_n andr._n carolstad_n jerom_n schurff_n nic._n amsdorff_n and_o phil._n melanchton_n approve_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o augustinian_n the_o elector_n ratifi_v their_o act_n and_o not_o only_o discharge_v private_a mass_n in_o the_o cloister_n but_o in_o the_o open_a church_n and_o then_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o castle_n then_o and_o there_o also_o image_n be_v break_v down_o auricular_a confession_n be_v forbid_v both_o element_n be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o people_n and_o andr._n carolstad_n teach_v that_o civil_a court_n shall_v be_v order_v not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o man_n but_o of_o moses_n he_o set_v forth_o a_o book_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o priests-mariage_n and_o against_o the_o vow_n of_o monk_n when_o luther_n hear_v hereof_o though_o he_o do_v not_o approve_v all_o that_o be_v do_v and_o write_v yet_o he_o write_v unto_o spalatinus_n august_n 15_o carolstad_n must_v have_v some_o liberty_n for_o he_o will_v not_o be_v content_a if_o any_o do_v oppose_v he_o erasmus_n be_v offend_v that_o any_o reformation_n be_v begin_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o he_o write_v unto_o peter_n barbire_n august_n 13._o saying_n it_o can_v not_o be_v tell_v how_o many_o and_o what_o kind_n of_o man_n do_v at_o the_o first_o love_n luther_n when_o i_o have_v read_v a_o few_o page_n of_o his_o book_n i_o do_v foresee_v the_o matter_n will_v turn_v to_o a_o broil_n i_o do_v so_o hate_v discord_n that_o even_o verity_n with_o sedition_n be_v unpleasant_a unto_o i_o ...._o as_o i_o think_v many_o thing_n be_v receive_v in_o the_o church_n which_o may_v be_v change_v to_o the_o great_a good_a of_o christian_a religion_n so_o nothing_o please_v i_o which_o be_v do_v tumultuous_o and_o in_o another_o date_a august_n 23_o he_o say_v i_o wish_v it_o be_v true_a that_o christiern_n king_n of_o denmark_n say_v unto_o i_o while_o we_o be_v talk_v of_o such_o a_o purpose_n gentle_a purge_n work_v not_o but_o efficacious_a potion_n shake_v the_o whole_a body_n i_o see_v no_o good_a issue_n unless_o christ_n himself_o turn_v the_o temerity_n of_o man_n into_o good_a etc._n etc._n albert_n archb_n of_o mentz_n begin_v again_o to_o sell_v pardon_n in_o hala_n of_o saxony_n then_o luther_n write_v unto_o he_o from_o his_o pathmos_n novemb_n 25._o threaten_v he_o that_o if_o he_o leave_v not_o that_o idol_n of_o pardon_n great_a evil_n will_v be_v send_v on_o he_o and_o if_o he_o dismiss_v not_o these_o which_o for_o eschue_a fornication_n have_v marry_v he_o will_v make_v know_v open_o some_o thing_n both_o of_o he_o and_o other_o bb_n which_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v bury_v in_o silence_n the_o bishop_n return_v answer_n decemb._n 21._o show_v that_o he_o have_v read_v his_o letter_n with_o good_a like_n and_o afterward_o he_o shall_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o complain_v of_o he_o and_o he_o will_v live_v as_o become_v a_o christian_a prince_n for_o which_o end_n he_o require_v his_o prayer_n and_o of_o other_o good_a man_n see_v that_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n alone_o he_o can_v take_v admonition_n in_o good_a part_n and_o wish_v well_o unto_o luther_n for_o christ_n cause_n the_o university_n of_o paris_n send_v forth_o their_o judgement_n against_o luther_n book_n and_o ph._n melanchton_n oppose_v it_o with_o this_o inscription_n of_o his_o book_n against_o the_o famous_a decree_n of_o the_o parisian_n the_o apology_n of_o melanchton_n for_o luther_n likewise_o henry_n viii_o king_n of_o england_n write_v against_o luther_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o seven_o saerament_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n when_o leo_n hear_v of_o it_o he_o send_v unto_o he_o the_o title_n defender_n of_o the_o faith_n as_o alexander_n vi._n have_v give_v unto_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_n king_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o other_o pope_n do_v first_o call_v the_o king_n of_o france_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n but_o say_v pe._n soave_fw-it luther_n be_v not_o dash_v with_o authority_n but_o lay_v aside_o the_o due_a reverence_n of_o his_o person_n write_v against_o he_o with_o such_o bitterness_n of_o word_n as_o he_o have_v use_v against_o the_o puny_a doctor_n and_o the_o meddle_v of_o the_o king_n in_o this_o cause_n do_v not_o satisfy_v many_o in_o this_o controversy_n and_o as_o it_o happen_v in_o debate_n most_o do_v favour_n the_o weak_a party_n and_o do_v much_o commend_v their_o weak_a endeavour_n immediate_o after_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o edict_n at_o worm_n hugh_n bishop_n of_o constance_n send_v the_o pope_n bull_n and_o that_o edict_n unto_o the_o town_n of_o zurik_n and_o command_v they_o to_o obey_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o he_o inveighe_v against_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o his_o follower_n wherefore_o zuinglius_fw-la give_v account_n unto_o the_o senate_n and_o to_o the_o college_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o what_o he_o have_v teach_v and_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o bishop_n especial_o press_v that_o he_o forbear_v not_o the_o priest_n with_o their_o concubine_n which_o wickedness_n say_v he_o bring_v the_o clergy_n into_o contempt_n and_o be_v a_o very_a lewd_a example_n unto_o the_o people_n and_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o swiser_n general_o that_o they_o shall_v remember_v a_o former_a licence_n which_o the_o magistrate_n have_v grant_v unto_o the_o priest_n to_o have_v a_o concubine_n for_o save_v the_o honesty_n of_o other_o man_n wife_n which_o licence_n though_o ridiculous_a yet_o necessary_a for_o the_o time_n shall_v be_v amend_v by_o turn_v fornication_n into_o lawful_a marriage_n the_o bishop_n command_n give_v courage_n unto_o the_o black_a friar_n to_o write_v against_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o he_o cease_v not_o to_o defend_v his_o own_o doctrine_n he_o publish_v 67._o conclusion_n contain_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o senate_n for_o remove_v such_o strife_n do_v appoint_v a_o convocation_n of_o all_o the_o clergy_n within_o their_o jurisdiction_n against_o january_n 23._o promise_v free_a liberty_n of_o reason_v unto_o both_o party_n and_o by_o letter_n invite_v the_o bb_n of_o constance_n curia_n and_o basile_n either_o to_o come_v personal_o or_o to_o send_v their_o commissioner_n there_o be_v assemble_v about_o 600._o priest_n and_o as_o they_o call_v they_o divine_v the_o bishop_n of_o constance_n send_v in_o his_o name_n john_n faber_n who_o afterward_o be_v bishop_n of_o vienna_n the_o burgermaster_n begin_v say_v it_o be_v not_o unknown_a what_o dissension_n have_v arisen_a in_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n therefore_o this_o assembly_n be_v call_v especial_o that_o if_o any_o can_v speak_v against_o these_o 67_o conclusion_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la now_o make_v know_v unto_o they_o all_o he_o may_v now_o speak_v the_o same_o free_o faber_n show_v his_o commission_n and_o allege_v it_o be_v not_o a_o pertinent_a place_n nor_o time_n to_o decide_v thing_n of_o that_o kind_n which_o appertain_v proper_o unto_o a_o general_n council_n and_o the_o pope_n and_o prince_n have_v agree_v that_o one_o shall_v be_v call_v short_o zuinglius_fw-la say_fw-la as_o pe._n soave_fw-it report_n that_o be_v but_o a_o trick_n to_o deceive_v people_n with_o vain_a hope_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o in_o gross_a darkness_n it_o be_v better_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n to_o search_v some_o particular_n that_o be_v sure_a and_o undoubted_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o receive_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n until_o a_o more_o copious_a clear_n of_o doubt_n come_v by_o a_o council_n when_o faber_n be_v urge_v again_o and_o again_o to_o show_v what_o he_o can_v speak_v against_o that_o doctrine_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la he_o say_v i_o will_v not_o deal_v with_o he_o by_o word_n but_o i_o will_v confute_v
his_o conclusion_n by_o write_v because_o neither_o faber_n nor_o any_o other_o will_v object_v the_o burg-master_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o senate_n break_v up_o the_o assembly_n and_o they_o give_v order_n that_o through_o their_o jurisdiction_n all_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v lay_v aside_o and_o the_o gospel_n be_v teach_v sincere_o according_a to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a &_o new_a testament_n so_o say_v pe._n soave_fw-it when_o neither_o the_o diligence_n of_o doctor_n and_o bb_n nor_o the_o condemn_a bull_n of_o the_o pope_n nor_o the_o rigid_a edict_n of_o the_o emperor_n can_v prevail_v any_o way_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n but_o it_o rather_o take_v deep_a root_n all_o man_n almost_o do_v judge_v a_o general_a council_n to_o be_v the_o only_a remedy_n but_o the_o several_a aim_n of_o several_a sort_n as_o of_o the_o prince_n people_n roman_a court_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n cast_v they_o upon_o several_a thought_n concern_v the_o way_n of_o order_v and_o place_n of_o the_o council_n pe._n soave_fw-it write_v of_o these_o aim_n and_o purpose_n particular_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n leo_n make_v a_o pause_n herein_o at_o that_o time_n satan_n be_v busy_a sow_v his_o tare_n by_o the_o first_o anabaptist_n who_o name_n let_v they_o perish_v anabaptist_n the_o anabaptist_n against_o they_o luther_n be_v the_o first_o that_o do_v write_v from_o his_o pathmos_n as_o he_o speak_v they_o pretend_v to_o have_v revelation_n from_o the_o spirit_n and_o conference_n with_o god_n melanchton_n be_v not_o a_o little_a trouble_v with_o they_o the_o epistle_n of_o luther_n unto_o melanchton_n be_v worth_a the_o read_n wherein_o he_o say_v i_o commend_v not_o thy_o timorousness_n and_o first_o see_v they_o bear_v witness_n of_o themselves_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v hear_v for_o that_o but_o as_o john_n advise_v try_v the_o spirit_n you_o have_v the_o counsel_n of_o gamaliell_n to_o delay_v for_o as_o yet_o i_o hear_v of_o nothing_o either_o do_v or_o say_v by_o they_o which_o satan_n can_v not_o do_v my_o advice_n be_v that_o you_o try_v whether_o they_o can_v prove_v their_o call_n for_o god_n never_o have_v send_v any_o but_o be_v either_o call_v by_o man_n or_o declare_v by_o sign_n no_o not_o his_o own_o son_n the_o prophet_n former_o have_v their_o power_n according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o prophetical_a order_n as_o we_o now_o by_o man_n i_o will_v in_o no_o way_n accept_v of_o they_o if_o they_o assert_v their_o call_n by_o a_o naked_a revelation_n see_v god_n will_v not_o let_v samuel_n speak_v but_o by_o the_o accessary_a authority_n of_o heli._n this_o be_v especial_o necessary_a unto_o the_o public_a function_n of_o preach_v and_o that_o you_o may_v try_v their_o private_a spirit_n you_o may_v inquire_v whether_o they_o know_v anguish_n of_o mind_n divine_a birth_n death_n and_o hell_n if_o you_o hear_v that_o they_o speak_v all_o thing_n smooth_a pleasant_a devote_v as_o they_o call_v it_o and_o religious_a albeit_o they_o say_v they_o have_v be_v ravish_v into_o the_o three_o heaven_n approve_v they_o not_o because_o they_o want_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o only_a proover_n of_o christian_n and_o sure_a searcher_n of_o spirit_n will_v thou_o know_v the_o place_n and_o way_n of_o talk_v with_o god_n hear_v as_o a_o lion_n he_o have_v break_v all_o my_o bone_n and_o i_o be_v cast_v forth_o from_o his_o face_n and_o my_o soul_n be_v fill_v with_o sorrow_n and_o my_o life_n draw_v near_o unto_o hell_n the_o divine_a majesty_n speak_v not_o as_o they_o say_v immediatley_n so_o that_o a_o man_n may_v see_v he_o yea_o man_n shall_v not_o see_v he_o and_o live_v nature_n can_v not_o endure_v the_o little_a star_n of_o his_o speech_n and_o therefore_o he_o speak_v by_o man_n because_o we_o can_v not_o endure_v he_o speak_v the_o virgin_n be_v trouble_v when_o she_o hear_v the_o angel_n so_o do_v daniel_n and_o jeremy_n complain_v correct_v i_o in_o judgement_n and_o be_v not_o a_o terror_n unto_o i_o what_o more_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o his_o majesty_n can_v speak_v familiar_o with_o the_o old_a man_n and_o not_o first_o kill_v and_o make_v he_o wither_v lest_o his_o wicked_a smell_n do_v stink_v see_v he_o be_v a_o consume_a fire_n even_o the_o dream_n and_o vision_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v terrible_a at_o least_o when_o they_o be_v know_v try_v therefore_o and_o hear_v not_o a_o glorious_a jesus_n unless_o thou_o know_v that_o he_o be_v crucify_v exit_fw-la tom_n 2._o epist_n lutheri_fw-la fol._n 41._o xii_o in_o march_n 1522._o luther_n return_v into_o wittenberg_n and_o by_o 1522._o luther_n return_v an._n 1522._o letter_n he_o show_v unto_o the_o elector_n the_o cause_n of_o his_o return_v say_v your_o highness_n know_v my_o cause_n or_o now_o be_v please_v to_o know_v that_o i_o have_v not_o the_o gospel_n from_o man_n but_o from_o heaven_n by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n so_o that_o i_o true_o may_v as_o here_o after_o i_o will_v call_v myself_o his_o servant_n and_o evangelist_n whereas_o i_o do_v offer_v myself_o unto_o congnisance_n of_o my_o cause_n and_o become_v subject_a unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o i_o do_v it_o not_o that_o i_o have_v any_o doubt_n of_o my_o doctrine_n but_o in_o modesty_n that_o i_o may_v call_v other_o but_o when_o i_o see_v that_o too_o much_o modesty_n turn_v to_o the_o detriment_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o satan_n when_o i_o have_v scarce_o give_v he_o ahandbreadth_n will_v take_v up_o all_o the_o field_n my_o conscience_n press_v i_o to_o take_v another_o course_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v satisfy_v your_o h._n that_o i_o have_v yield_v for_o a_o year_n for_o the_o devil_n know_v well_o that_o i_o do_v it_o not_o for_o fear_v or_o distrust_v ....._o now_o i_o be_o come_v back_o to_o wittenberg_n with_o a_o high_a and_o strong_a guard_n than_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n can_v give_v i_o nor_o come_v it_o ever_o into_o my_o thought_n to_o seek_v defence_n from_o your_o h._n yea_o i_o be_o confident_a your_o h._n shall_v have_v better_a guard_n and_o defence_n by_o i_o than_o you_o can_v give_v i_o and_o if_o i_o know_v that_o your_o h._n either_o will_v or_o can_v maintain_v i_o i_o have_v not_o return_v at_o all_o it_o be_v not_o any_o sword_n that_o can_v provide_v for_o or_o help_v this_o cause_n god_n only_o must_v rule_v and_o work_v here_o without_o any_o industry_n or_o help_n of_o man_n therefore_o in_o this_o cause_n he_o who_o trust_v most_o firm_o in_o god_n shall_v defend_v himself_o and_o other_o most_o safe_o and_o see_v i_o find_v your_o ho._n so_o weak_a in_o faith_n i_o can_v no_o way_n attribute_v so_o much_o unto_o your_o ho._n that_o i_o can_v think_v to_o be_v defend_v or_o deliver_v out_o of_o danger_n by_o you_o i_o shall_v preserve_v your_o ho._n soul_n body_n and_o estate_n free_a from_o all_o damnage_n and_o danger_n in_o this_o my_o cause_n whether_o your_o ho._n believe_v it_o or_o not_o let_v your_o ho._n know_v also_o and_o doubt_v not_o that_o it_o be_v decree_v otherwise_o in_o heaven_n then_o at_o norinbergh_n concern_v this_o business_n for_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o they_o who_o think_v they_o have_v devour_v and_o destroy_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o a_o benedicito_fw-la he_o be_v another_o and_o more_o potent_a prince_n then_o dude_v n._n with_o who_o we_o have_v to_o do_v he_o know_v i_o and_o i_o he_o pretty_a well_o if_o your_o illustrious_a ho._n do_v believe_v you_o shall_v see_v the_o wonderfulness_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o see_v you_o believe_v not_o you_o have_v see_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n unto_o god_n be_v glory_n and_o praise_n for_o ever_o then_o more_o particular_o he_o say_v i_o be_v call_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o wittenberg_n now_o in_o my_o absence_n satan_n have_v fall_v upon_o my_o flock_n the_o anabaptist_n be_v there_o and_o some_o other_o trouble_n and_n have_v stir_v such_o trouble_n that_o require_v my_o presence_n necessary_o and_o further_o i_o fear_v a_o great_a sedition_n in_o germany_n which_o they_o will_v desire_v to_o remove_v or_o for_o a_o time_n delay_n by_o joint_a prayer_n ard_n in_o another_o epistle_n unto_o melanchton_n he_o say_v prepare_v i_o a_o lodging_n for_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n press_v i_o to_o return_v unto_o you_o after_o his_o return_v he_o preach_v every_o day_n and_o in_o his_o sermon_n as_o abr._n scultet_n express_v his_o word_n he_o speak_v against_o not_o what_o be_v do_v in_o reformation_n during_o his_o absence_n but_o the_o manner_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o do_v some_o thing_n in_o his_o absence_n he_o by_o letter_n have_v exhort_v they_o to_o
freewill_n for_o if_o one_o church_n will_v not_o follow_v willing_o the_o example_n of_o another_o in_o these_o circumstantial_a thing_n why_o be_v a_o council_n needful_a to_o compel_v man_n by_o decree_n which_o may_v turn_v to_o law_n &_o snare_n of_o man_n conscience_n therefore_o let_v one_o follow_v another_o free_o or_o use_v their_o own_o fashion_n so_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v mantain_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o word_n howbeit_o there_o be_v a_o variety_n in_o other_o external_a thing_n schultet_fw-la annal._n ad_fw-la ann._n 1524._o ex_fw-la luth._o tom_n 2._o epist_n xxiii_o in_o the_o year_n 1526._o solyman_n the_o turk_n enter_v into_o hungary_n 1526._o 1526._o there_o the_o king_n lewes_n can_v have_v no_o help_n from_o christian_n yet_o the_o bb_n stir_v he_o to_o a_o battle_n and_o as_o he_o have_v sell_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o slave_n unto_o they_o in_o kill_v spain_n the_o authority_n of_o th●_n pope_n be_v deny_v in_o spain_n the_o professor_n of_o reformation_n he_o be_v kill_v jo._n sleidan_n the_o same_o year_n the_o emp._n be_v provoke_v by_o that_o league_n make_v by_o pope_n clemens_n discharge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n through_o all_o spain_n leave_v a_o example_n unto_o posterity_n that_o church-disciplin_n may_v be_v maintain_v without_o papal_a authority_n but_o as_o good_a seed_n be_v sow_o out_o of_o season_n so_o good_a work_n without_o good_a motive_n and_o principle_n have_v no_o continuance_n in_o juny_n be_v a_o diet_n at_o spira_n a_o diet_n in_o spira_n spira_n letter_n be_v bring_v from_o the_o emperor_n date_v at_o spala_n march_v 23._o the_o sum_n be_v for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o intend_v to_o go_v short_o unto_o rome_n to_o be_v crown_v and_o to_o talk_v with_o the_o highpriest_n concern_v a_o general_a council_n and_o no_o good_a can_v be_v do_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o these_o assembly_n therefore_o they_o shall_v observe_v the_o decree_n at_o worm_n and_o take_v his_o absence_n in_o good_a part_n hope_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o general_a council_n short_o the_o prince_n and_o town_n profess_v the_o reformation_n say_v they_o be_v desirous_a in_o all_o thing_n to_o please_v the_o emperor_n but_o if_o he_o be_v right_o inform_v of_o the_o condition_n of_o germany_n and_o how_o the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n increase_v daily_a he_o will_v not_o urge_v the_o decree_n of_o worm_n as_o for_o a_o general_n council_n there_o be_v no_o appearance_n of_o it_o see_v there_o be_v friendship_n betwixt_o he_o and_o the_o pope_n when_o the_o letter_n be_v write_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o date_n but_o now_o it_o be_v otherwise_o see_v the_o pope_n have_v levy_v a_o army_n against_o he_o wherefore_o they_o think_v best_a to_o send_v orator_n unto_o the_o emperor_n to_o inform_v he_o more_o full_o and_o how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o delay_v the_o business_n of_o religion_n and_o no_o less_o perilous_a to_o execute_v the_o decree_n of_o worm_n and_o to_o entreat_v he_o to_o call_v a_o council_n in_o germany_n and_o come_v unto_o it_o or_o at_o least_o to_o permit_v it_o as_o it_o be_v determine_v at_o noribergh_n but_o be_v contromand_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o harm_n of_o germany_n or_o if_o he_o will_v not_o allow_v a_o nationall_n council_n of_o germany_n to_o entreat_v he_o to_o delay_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n until_o the_o general_n council_n for_o otherwise_o the_o malady_n will_v wax_v worse_o and_o to_o represent_v that_o so_o long_o as_o every_o man_n be_v solicitous_a of_o his_o own_o estate_n in_o time_n of_o this_o variance_n it_o will_v be_v difficile_a to_o collect_v any_o money_n for_o any_o other_o use_n then_o another_o supplication_n be_v present_v unto_o the_o diet_n complain_v of_o the_o multitude_n idleness_n and_o opposition_n of_o beg_a friar_n of_o the_o multitude_n &_o abuse_n of_o holy_a day_n and_o petition_v to_o leave_v unto_o every_o man_n the_o choice_n of_o his_o meat_n until_o the_o general_a council_n at_o this_o time_n the_o duke_n of_o saxon_n and_o the_o landgrave_n of_o hass_n enter_v into_o conference_n with_o the_o commissioner_n of_o strawsburgh_n that_o see_v they_o know_v not_o what_o the_o bb_n and_o their_o adherent_n do_v intend_v all_o of_o tkem_fw-mi shall_v concur_v unto_o mutual_a aid_n if_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n for_o religion_n but_o the_o bb_n will_v not_o proceed_v here_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o crave_v to_o delay_v these_o because_o of_o the_o present_a variance_n betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o caesar_n great_a strife_n arise_v among_o they_o wherefore_o the_o duke_n of_o saxon_n and_o the_o landgrave_n say_v they_o will_v stay_v no_o long_o ferdinand_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o trevers_n consider_v how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v if_o nothing_o be_v do_v and_o all_o depart_n with_o grudge_n and_o malice_n do_v propound_v for_o appease_v such_o heart_n burn_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o resolve_v upon_o a_o lawful_a council_n either_o general_n or_o nationall_n within_o a_o year_n at_o farre_v and_o to_o entreat_v the_o emperor_n to_o repair_v short_o into_o germany_n in_o consideration_n of_o their_o present_a condition_n as_o concern_v the_o decree_n at_o worm_n they_o be_v content_a that_o all_o shall_v demean_v themselves_o in_o their_o province_n until_o a_o council_n so_o as_o they_o will_v be_v answerable_a unto_o god_n and_o caesar_n and_o it_o be_v decree_v so_o after_o this_o diet_n certain_a prince_n consult_v at_o esling_n to_o write_v speedy_o unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o show_v that_o they_o have_v decree_v to_o send_v orator_n unto_o he_o but_o the_o king_n of_o france_n will_v not_o grant_v they_o passage_n except_o for_o four_o month_n whereof_o one_o be_v pass_v therefore_o they_o have_v determine_v to_o defer_v their_o orator_n until_o their_o next_o assembly_n which_o they_o have_v appoint_v to_o be_v at_o regensburgh_n the_o first_o day_n of_o aprile_a next_o to_o treat_v of_o the_o turkish_a war_n trust_v that_o by_o time_n they_o shall_v have_v better_a occasion_n to_o send_v or_o they_o shall_v give_v he_o intelligence_n another_o way_n and_o entreat_v he_o to_o repair_v into_o germany_n as_o short_o etc._n etc._n slcidan_n lib._n 6._o xxiv_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1527._o otto_n paccius_n counsellor_n of_o george_n duke_n of_o saxony_n inform_v the_o duke_n elector_n and_o the_o landgrave_n that_o ferdinand_n than_o king_n of_o bohem_n and_o hungary_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n have_v make_v a_o league_n with_o other_o also_o to_o destroy_v they_o and_o luther_n religion_n wherefore_o these_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o defence_n trouble_n be_v like_a to_o ensue_v but_o when_o these_o which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v make_v that_o league_n do_v purge_v themselves_o the_o fear_n be_v appease_v paccius_n be_v banish_v but_o the_o diet_n at_o regensburgh_n be_v discharge_v ibid._n leonard_n cesar_n a_o preacher_n be_v burn_v at_o the_o command_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o passaw_n in_o bavier_n for_o hold_v these_o article_n faith_n only_o justifi_v there_o be_v but_o two_o sacrament_n baptism_n &_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o mass_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n nor_o be_v profitable_a unto_o the_o live_n nor_o dead_a confession_n of_o all_o sin_n be_v not_o command_v only_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o sin_n a_o vow_n of_o chastity_n bind_v not_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o of_o purgatory_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n of_o day_n in_o divine_a thing_n be_v no_o freewill_n he_o will_v have_v declare_v himself_o in_o these_o article_n when_o he_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o court_n but_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v he_o eccius_n be_v his_o accuser_n and_o speak_v always_o in_o latin_a but_o leonard_n speak_v in_o the_o common_a language_n he_o will_v have_v all_o the_o company_n to_o understand_v he_o osiand_n centu_fw-la 16._o lib_fw-la 2._o c._n 5._o this_o year_n be_v the_o first_o visitation_n of_o the_o church_n berna_n a_o public_a dispute_n at_o berna_n in_o saxony_n on_o the_o 17._o day_n of_o december_n the_o senate_n of_o berne_n make_v public_a intimation_n of_o a_o dispute_n in_o the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o begin_v january_n 7._o they_o invite_v the_o bb_n of_o constance_n bafile_v sedun_n and_o lausan_n to_o come_v and_o bring_v their_o divine_n or_o else_o they_o tell_v they_o they_o will_v confiscate_v all_o their_o good_n within_o their_o territory_n they_o show_v that_o only_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n shall_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o dispute_n and_o they_o engage_v themselves_o for_o safety_n unto_o all_o who_o shall_v come_v two_o minister_n be_v name_v to_o sustain_v these_o article_n the_o true_a church_n who_o head_n be_v christ_n only_o l_v beget_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n continue_v in_o it_o and_o hear_v not_o the_o